Translation: W.F. Trotter,
Introductory Note
Blaise Pascal was born at Clermont in Auvergne on June 19, 1623, the son of the
president of the Court of Aids of Clermont. He was a precocious child, and soon showed
amazing mathematical talent. His early training was scientific rather than literary or
theological, and scientific interests predominated during the first period of his
activity. He corresponded with the most distinguished scholars of the time, and made
important contributions to pure and applied mathematics and to physics.
Meantime, an accident had brought the Pascal family into contact with Jansenist
doctrine, and Blaise became an ardent convert. Jansenism, which took its name from
Jansenius, the bishop of Ypres, had its headquarters in the Cistercian Abbey of
Port-Royal, and was one of the most rigorous and lofty developments of post-Reformation
Catholicism. In doctrine it somewhat resembled Calvinism in its insistence on Grace and
Predestination at the expense of the freedom of the will, and in its cultivation of a
thoroughgoing logical method of apologetics. In practise it represented an austere and
even ascetic morality, and it did much to raise the ethical and intellectual level of
seventeenth century France.
Jansenism was attacked as heretical, especially by the Jesuits; and the civil power
ultimately took measures to crush the movement, disbanding the nuns of Port-Royal, and by
its persecutions affording to many of the Jansenists opportunities for the display of a
heroic obstinacy. In this struggle Pascal took an important part by the publication, under
the pseudonym of "Louis de Montalte," of a series of eighteen letters, attacking
the morality of the Jesuits and defending Jansenism against the charge of heresy. In spite
of the fact that the party for which he fought was defeated, in these "Provincial
Letters," as they are usually called, Pascal inflicted a blow on the Society of Jesus
from which that order has never entirely recovered.
Pascal now formed the plan of writing an "Apology for the Christian
Religion," and during the rest of his life he was collecting materials and making
notes for this work. But he had long been feeble in health; in the ardor of his religious
devotion he had undergone incredible hardships; and on August 19, 1662, he died in his
fortieth year.
It was from the notes for his contemplated "Apology" that the
Port-Royalists compiled and edited the book known as his "Pensees" or
"Thoughts." The early texts were much tampered with, and the material has been
frequently rearranged; but now at last it is possible to read these fragmentary jottings
as they came from the hand of their author. In spite of their incompleteness and frequent
incoherence, the "Thoughts" have long held a high place among the great
religious classics. Much of the theological argument implied in these utterances has
little appeal to the modern mind, but the acuteness of the observation of human life, the
subtlety of the reasoning, the combination of precision and fervid imagination in the
expression, make this a book to which the discerning mind can return again and again for
insight and inspiration.
Note
Passages erased by Pascal are enclosed in square brackets, thus [ ]. Words added or
corrected by the editor of the text are similarly denoted. The translation is from the
text of Brunschvieg.
Section I
Thoughts on Mind and on Style
1
The difference between the mathematical and the intuitive mind. - In the one the
principles are palpable, but removed from ordinary use; so that for want of habit it is
difficult to turn one's mind in that direction: but if one turns it thither ever so
little, one sees the principles fully, and one must have a quite inaccurate mind who
reasons wrongly from principles so plain that it is almost impossible they should escape
notice.
But in the intuitive mind the principles are found in common use, and are before the
eyes of everybody. One has only to look, and no effort is necessary; it is only a question
of good eyesight, but it must be good, for the principles are so subtle and so numerous,
that it is almost impossible but that some escape notice. Now the omission of one
principle leads to error; thus one must have very clear sight to see all the principles,
and in the next place an accurate mind not to draw false deductions from known principles.
All mathematicians would then be intuitive if they had clear sight, for they do not
reason incorrectly from principles known to them; and intuitive minds would be
mathematical if they could turn their eyes to the principles of mathematics to which they
are unused.
The reason, therefore, that some intuitive minds are not mathematical is that they
cannot at all turn their attention to the principles of mathematics. But the reason that
mathematicians are not intuitive is that they do not see what is before them, and that,
accustomed to the exact and plain principles of mathematics, and not reasoning till they
have well inspected and arranged their principles, they are lost in matters of intuition
where the principles do not allow of such arrangement. They are scarcely seen; they are
felt rather than seen; there is the greatest difficulty in making them felt by those who
do not of themselves perceive them. These principles are so fine and so numerous that a
very delicate and very clear sense is needed to perceive them, and to judge rightly and
justly when they are perceived, without for the most part being able to demonstrate them
in order as in mathematics; because the principles are not known to us in the same way,
and because it would be an endless matter to undertake it. We must see the matter at once,
at one glance, and not by a process of reasoning, at least to a certain degree. And thus
it is rare that mathematicians are intuitive, and that men of intuition are
mathematicians, because mathematicians wish to treat matters of intuition mathematically,
and make themselves ridiculous, wishing to begin with definitions and then with axioms,
which is not the way to proceed in this kind of reasoning. Not that the mind does not do
so, but it does it tacitly, naturally, and without technical rules; for the expression of
it is beyond all men, and only a few can feel it.
Intuitive minds, on the contrary, being thus accustomed to judge at a single glance,
are so astonished when they are presented with propositions of which they understand
nothing, and the way to which is through definitions and axioms so sterile, and which they
are not accustomed to see thus in detail, that they are repelled and disheartened.
But dull minds are never either intuitive or mathematical.
Mathematicians who are only mathematicians have exact minds, provided all things are
explained to them by means of definitions and axioms; otherwise they are inaccurate and
insufferable, for they are only right when the principles are quite clear.
And men of intuition who are only intuitive cannot have the patience to reach to first
principles of things speculative and conceptual, which they have never seen in the world,
and which are altogether out of the common.
2
There are different kinds of right understanding; some have right understanding in a
certain order of things, and not in others, where they go astray. Some draw conclusions
well from a few premises, and this displays an acute judgment.
Others draw conclusions well where there are many premises.
For example, the former easily learn hydrostatics, where the premises are few, but the
conclusions are so fine that only the greatest acuteness can reach them.
And in spite of that these persons would perhaps not be great mathematicians, because
mathematics contain a great number of premises, and there is perhaps a kind of intellect
that can search with ease a few premises to the bottom: and cannot in the least penetrate
those matters in which there are many premises.
There are then two kinds of intellect: the one able to penetrate acutely and deeply
into the conclusions of given premises, and this is the precise intellect; the other able
to comprehend a great number of premises without confusing them, and this is the
mathematical intellect. The one has force and exactness, the other comprehension. Now the
one quality can exist without the other; the intellect can be strong and narrow, and can
also be comprehensive and weak.
3
Those who are accustomed to judge by feeling do not understand the process of
reasoning, for they would understand at first sight, and are not used to seek for
principles. And others, on the contrary, who are accustomed to reason from principles, do
not at all understand matters of feeling, seeking principles, and being unable to see at a
glance.
4
Mathematics, Intuition. - True eloquence makes light of eloquence, true morality makes
light of morality; that is to say, the morality of the judgment, which has no rules, makes
light of the morality of the intellect.
For it is to judgment that perception belongs, as science belongs to intellect.
Intuition is the part of judgment, mathematics of intellect.
To make light of philosophy is to be a true philosopher.
5
Those who judge of a work by rule are in regard to others as those who have a watch are
in regard to others. One says, "It is two hours ago;" the other says, "It
is only three-quarters of an hour." I look at my watch, and say to the one, "You
are weary," and to the other, "Time gallops with you;" for it is only an
hour and a half ago, and I laugh at those who tell me that time goes slowly with me, and
that I judge by imagination. They do not know that I judge by my watch.
6
Just as we harm the understanding, we harm the feelings also.
The understanding and the feelings are moulded by intercourse; the understanding and
feelings are corrupted by intercourse. Thus good or bad society improves or corrupts them.
It is, then, all-important to know how to choose in order to improve and not to corrupt
them; and we cannot make this choice, if they be not already improved and not corrupted.
Thus a circle is formed, and those are fortunate who escape it.
7
The greater intellect one has, the more originality one finds in men. Ordinary persons
find no difference between men.
8
There are many people who listen to a sermon in the same way as they listen to vespers.
9
When we wish to correct with advantage, and to show another that he errs, we must
notice from what side he views the matter, for on that side it is usually true, and admit
that truth to him, but reveal to him the side on which it is false. He is satisfied with
that, for he sees that he was not mistaken, and that he only failed to see all sides. Now,
no one is offended at not seeing everything; but one does not like to be mistaken, and
that perhaps arises from the fact that man naturally cannot see everything, and that
naturally he cannot err in the side he looks at, since the perceptions of our senses are
always true.
10
People are generally better persuaded by the reasons which they have themselves
discovered than by those which have come into the mind of others.
11
All great amusements are dangerous to the Christian life; but among all those which the
world has invented there is none more to be feared than the theatre. It is a
representation of the passions so natural and so delicate that it excites them and gives
birth to them in our hearts, and, above all, to that of love, principally when it is
represented as very chaste and virtuous. For the more innocent it appears to innocent
souls, the more they are likely to be touched by it. Its violence pleases our self-love,
which immediately forms a desire to produce the same effects which are seen so well
represented; and, at the same time, we make ourselves a conscience founded on the
propriety of the feelings which we see there, by which the fear of pure souls is removed,
since they imagine that it cannot hurt their purity to love with a love which seems to
them so reasonable.
So we depart from the theatre with our hearts so filled with all the beauty and
tenderness of love, the soul and the mind so persuaded of its innocence, that we are quite
ready to receive its first impressions, or rather to seek an opportunity of awakening them
in the heart of another, in order that we may receive the same pleasures and the same
sacrifices which we have seen so well represented in the theatre.
12
Scaramouch, 1 who only thinks of one thing.
The doctor, 1 who speaks for a quarter of an hour after he has said
everything, so full is he of the desire of talking.
[Footnote 1: Stock characters in Italian comedy.]
13
One likes to see the error, the passion of Cleobuline, 2 because she is
unconscious of it. She would be displeasing, if she were not deceived.
[Footnote 2: Princess of Corinth, in Mlle. de Scudery's romance of "Artamene ou le
grand Cyrus."]
14
When a natural discourse paints a passion or an effect, one feels within oneself the
truth of what one reads, which was there before, although one did not know it. Hence one
is inclined to love him who makes us feel it, for he has not shown us his own riches, but
ours. And thus this benefit renders him pleasing to us, besides that such community of
intellect as we have with him necessarily inclines the heart to love.
15
Eloquence, which persuades by sweetness, not by authority; as a tyrant, not as a king.
16
Eloquence is an art of saying things in such a way - (1) that those to whom we speak
may listen to them without pain and with pleasure; (2) that they feel themselves
interested, so that self-love leads them more willingly to reflection upon it.
It consists, then, in a correspondence which we seek to establish between the head and
the heart of those to whom we speak on the one hand, and, on the other, between the
thoughts and the expressions which we employ. This assumes that we have studied well the
heart of man so as to know all its powers, and then to find the just proportions of the
discourse which we wish to adapt to them. We must put ourselves in the place of those who
are to hear us, and make trial on our own heart of the turn which we give to our discourse
in order to see whether one is made for the other, and whether we can assure ourselves
that the hearer will be, as it were, forced to surrender. We ought to restrict ourselves,
so far as possible, to the simple and natural, and not to magnify that which is little, or
belittle that which is great. It is not enough that a thing be beautiful; it must be
suitable to the subject, and there must be in it nothing of excess or defect.
17
Rivers are roads which move, and which carry us whither we desire to go.
18
When we do not know the truth of a thing, it is of advantage that there should exist a
common error which determines the mind of man, as, for example, the moon, to which is
attributed the change of seasons, the progress of disease, &c. For the chief malady of
man is restless curiosity about things which he cannot understand; and it is not so bad
for him to be in error as to be curious to no purpose.
The manner in which Epictetus, Montaigne, and Salomon de Tultie 3 wrote, is
the most usual, the most suggestive, the most remembered, and the oftenest quoted; because
it is entirely composed of thoughts born from the common talk of life. As when we speak of
the common error which exists among men that the moon is the cause of everything, we never
fail to say that Salomon de Tultie says that when we do not know the truth of a thing, it
is of advantage that there should exist a common error, &c.; which is the thought
above.
[Footnote 3: The name assumed by Pascal in his "Provincial Letters."]
19
The last thing one settles in writing a book is what one should put in first.
20
Order. - Why should I undertake to divide my virtues into four rather than into six?
Why should I rather establish virtue in four, in two, in one? Why into Abstine et sustine 4 rather than into "Follow Nature," or "Conduct your private affairs without
injustice," as Plato, or anything else? But there, you will say, everything is
contained in one word. Yes, but it is useless without explanation, and when we come to
explain it, as soon as we unfold this maxim which contains all the rest, they emerge in
that first confusion which you desired to avoid. So, when they are all included in one,
they are hidden and useless, as in a chest, and never appear save in their natural
confusion. Nature has established them all without including one in the other.
[Footnote 4: "Abstain and endure" - a Stoic maxim.]
21
Nature has made all her truths independent of one another. Our art makes one dependent
on the other. But this is not natural. Each keeps its own place.
22
Let no one say that I have said nothing new; the arrangement of the subject is new.
When we play tennis, we both play with the same ball, but one of us places it better.
I had as soon it said that I used words employed before. And in the same way if the
same thoughts in a different arrangement do not form a different discourse, no more do the
same words in their different arrangement from different thoughts!
23
Words differently arranged have a different meaning, and meanings differently arranged
have different effects.
24
Language. - We should not turn the mind from one thing to another, except for
relaxation, and that when it is necessary and the time suitable, and not otherwise. For he
that relaxes out of season wearies, and he who wearies us out of season makes us languid,
since we turn quite away. So much does our perverse lust like to do the contrary of what
those wish to obtain from us without giving us pleasure, the coin for which we will do
whatever is wanted.
25
Eloquence. - It requires the pleasant and the real; but the pleasant must itself be
drawn from the true.
26
Eloquence is a painting of thought; and thus those who, after having painted it, add
something more, make a picture instead of a portrait.
27
Miscellaneous. Language. - Those who make antitheses by forcing words are like those
who make false windows for symmetry. Their rule is not to speak accurately, but to make
apt figures of speech.
28
Symmetry is what we see at a glance; based on the fact that there is no reason for any
difference, and based also on the face of man; whence it happens that symmetry is only
wanted in breadth, not in height or depth.
29
When we see a natural style, we are astonished and delighted; for we expected to see an
author, and we find a man. Whereas those who have good taste, and who seeing a book expect
to find a man, are quite surprised to find an author. Plus poetice quam humane locutus es.
5 Those honour nature well, who teach that she can speak on everything, even on
theology.
[Footnote 5: "You have spoken more poetically than humanly."]
30
We only consult the ear because the heart is wanting. The rule is uprightness.
Beauty of omission, of judgment.
31
All the false beauties which we blame in Cicero have their admirers, and in great
number.
32
There is a certain standard of grace and beauty which consists in a certain relation
between our nature, such as it is, weak or strong, and the thing which pleases us.
Whatever is formed according to this standard pleases us, be it house, song, discourse,
verse, prose, woman, birds, rivers, tree, rooms, dress, &c. Whatever is not made
according to this standard displeases those who have good taste.
And as there is a perfect relation between a song and a house which are made after a
good model because they are like this good model, though each after its kind; even so
there is a perfect relation between things made after a bad model. Not that the bad model
is unique, for there are many; but each bad sonnet, for example, on whatever false model
it is formed, is just like a woman dressed after that model.
Nothing makes us understand better the ridiculousness of a false sonnet than to
consider nature and the standard, and then to imagine a woman or a house made according to
that standard.
33
Poetical beauty. - As we speak of poetical beauty, so ought we to speak of mathematical
beauty and medical beauty. But we do not do so; and the reason is that we know well what
is the object of mathematics, and that it consists in proofs, and what is the object of
medicine, and that it consists in healing. But we do not know in what grace consists,
which is the object of poetry. We do not know the natural model which we ought to imitate;
and through lack of this knowledge, we have coined fantastic terms, "The golden
age," "The wonder of our times," "Fatal," &c., and call this
jargon poetical beauty.
But whoever imagines a woman after this model, which consists in saying little things
in big words, will see a pretty girl adorned with mirrors and chains, at whom he will
smile; because we know better wherein consists the charm of woman than the charm of verse.
But those who are ignorant would admire her in this dress, and there are many villages in
which she would be taken for the queen; hence we call sonnets made after this model
"Village Queens."
34
No one passes in the world as skilled in verse unless he has put up the sign of a poet,
a mathematician, &c. But educated people do not want a sign, and draw little
distinction between the trade of a poet and that of an embroiderer.
People of education are not called poets or mathematicians, &c.; but they are all
these, and judges of all these. No one guesses what they are. When they come into society,
they talk on matters about which the rest are talking. We do not observe in them one
quality rather than another, save when they have to make use of it. But then we remember
it, for it is characteristic of such persons that we do not say of them that they are fine
speakers, when it is not a question of oratory, and that we say of them that they are fine
speakers, when it is such a question.
It is therefore false praise to give a man when we say of him, on his entry, that he is
a clever poet; and it is a bad sign when a man is not asked to give his judgment on some
verses.
35
We should not be able to say of a man, "He is a mathematician," or a
"preacher," or "eloquent"; but that he is "a gentleman."
That universal quality alone pleases me. It is a bad sign when, on seeing a person, you
remember his book. I would prefer you to see no quality till you meet it and have occasion
to use it, (Ne quid nimis, 6) for fear some one quality prevail and designate
the man. Let none think him a fine speaker, unless oratory be in question, and then let
them think it.
[Footnote 6: "Nothing in excess."]
36
Man is full of wants: he loves only those who can satisfy them all. "This one is a
good mathematician," one will say. But I have nothing to do with mathematics; he
would take me for a proposition. "That one is a good soldier." He would take me
for a besieged town. I need thet an upright man who can accommodate himself generally to
all my wants.
37
Since we cannot be universal and know all that is to be known of everything, we ought
to know a little about everything. For it is far better to know something about everything
than to know all about one thing. This universality is the best. If we can have both,
still better; but if we must choose, we ought to choose the former. And the world feels
this and does so; for the world is often a good judge.
38
A poet and not an honest man.
39
If lightning fell on low places, &c., poets, and those who can only reason about
things of that kind, would lack proofs.
40
If we wished to prove the examples which we take to prove other things, we should have
to take those other things to be examples; for, as we always believe the difficulty is in
what we wish to prove, we find the examples clearer and a help to demonstration.
Thus when we wish to demonstrate a general theorem, we must give the rule as applied to
a particular case; but, if we wish to demonstrate a particular case; we must begin with
the general rule. For we always find the thing obscure which we wish to prove, and that
clear which we use for the proof; for, when a thing is put forward to be proved, we first
fill ourselves with the imagination that it is therefore obscure, and on the contrary that
what is to prove it is clear, and so we understand it easily.
41
Epigrams of Martial. - Man loves malice, but not against one-eyed men nor the
unfortunate, but against the fortunate and proud. People are mistaken in thinking
otherwise.
For lust is the source of all our actions, and humanity, &c. We must please those
who have humane and tender feeling. That epigram about two one-eyed people is worthless,
for it does not console them, and only gives a point to the author's glory. All that is
only for the sake of the author is worthless. Ambitiosa recident ornamenta. 7
[Footnote 7: "They cut off superfluous ornament" - Horace.]
42
To call a king "Prince" is pleasing, because it diminishes his rank.
43
Certain authors, speaking of their works, say, "My book," "My
commentary," "My history," &c. They resemble middle-class people who
have a house of their own, and always have "My house" on their tongue. They
would do better to say, "Our book" "Our commentary," "Our
history," &c., because there is in them usually more of other people's than their
own.
44
Do you wish people to believe good of you? Don't speak.
45
Languages are ciphers, wherein letters are not changed into letters, but words into
words, so that an unknown language is decipherable.
46
A maker of witticisms, a bad character.
47
There are some who speak well and write badly. For the place and the audience warm
them, and draw from their minds more than they think of without that warmth.
48
When we find words repeated in a discourse, and, in trying to correct them, discover
that they are so appropriate that we would spoil the discourse, we must leave them alone.
This is the test; and our attempt is the work of envy, which is blind, and does not see
that repetition is not in this place a fault; for there is no general rule.
49
To mask nature and disguise her. No more king, pope, bishop, - but august monarch,
&c.; not Paris, - the capital of the kingdom. There are places in which we ought to
call Paris, Paris, and others in which we ought to call it the capital of the kingdom.
50
The same meaning changes with the words which express it. Meanings receive their
dignity from words instead of giving it to them. Examples should be sought.
51
Sceptic, for obstinate.
52
No one calls another a Cartesian but he who is not one himself, a pedant but a pedant,
a provincial but a provincial; and I would wager it was the printer who put it on the
title of Letters to a Provincial.
53
A carriage upset or overturned, according to the meaning. To spread abroad or upset,
according to the meaning. (The argument by force of M. le Maitre over the friar.)
54
Miscellaneous. - A form of speech, "I should have liked to apply myself to
that."
55
The aperitive virtue of a key, the attractive virtue of a hook.
56
To guess: "The part that I take in your trouble." The Cardinal 8
did not want to be guessed.
[Footnote 8: Cardinal Mazarin.]
"My mind is disquieted." I am disquieted is better.
57
I always feel uncomfortable under such compliments as these: "I have given you a
great deal of trouble," "I am afraid I am boring you," "I fear this is
too long." We either carry our audience with us, or irritate them.
58
You are ungraceful: "Excuse me, pray." Without that excuse I would not have
known there was anything amiss. "With reverence be it spoken . . ." The only
thing bad is their excuse.
59
"To extinguish the torch of sedition;" too luxuriant. "The restlessness
of his genius;" two superfluous grand words.
Section II
Part I
The Misery Of Man Without God
60
First part: Misery of man without God.
Second part: Happiness of man with God.
Or, First part: That nature is corrupt. Proved by nature itself.
Second part: That there is a Redeemer. Proved by Scripture.
61
Order. - I might well have taken this discourse in an order like this; to show the
vanity of all conditions of men, to show the vanity of ordinary lives, and then the vanity
of philosophic lives, sceptics, stoics; but the order would not have been kept. I know a
little what it is, and how few people understand it. No human science can keep it. Saint
Thomas did not keep it. Mathematics keep it, but they are useless on account of their
depth.
62
Preface to the first part. - To speak of those who have treated of the knowledge of
self; of the divisions of Charron, which sadden and weary us; of the confusion of
Montaigne; that he was quite aware of his want of method, and shunned it by jumping from
subject to subject; that he sought to be fashionable.
His foolish project of describing himself! And this not casually and against his
maxims, since every one makes mistakes, but by his maxims themselves, and by first and
chief design. For to say silly things by chance and weakness is a common misfortune; but
to say them intentionally is intolerable, and to say such as that . . .
63
Montaigne. - Montaigne's faults are great. Lewd words; this is bad, notwithstanding
Mademoiselle de Gournay. 1 Credulous; people without eyes. Ignorant; squaring
the circle, a greater world. His opinions on suicide, on death. He suggests an
indifference about salvation, without fear and without repentance. As his book was not
written with a religious purpose, he was not bound to mention religion; but it is always
our duty not to turn men from it. One can excuse his rather free and licentious opinions
on some relations of life (730, 231); but one cannot excuse his thoroughly pagan views on
death, for a man must renounce piety altogether, if he does not at least wish to die like
a Christian. Now, through the whole of his book his only conception of death is a cowardly
and effeminate one.
[Footnote 1: Montaigne's adopted daughter, who defends him in a Preface which she added
to his Essays.]
64
It is not in Montaigne, but in myself, that I find all that I see in him.
65
What good there is in Montaigne can only have been acquired with difficulty. The evil
that is in him, I mean apart from his morality, could have been corrected in a moment, if
he had been informed that he made too much of trifles and spoke too much of himself.
66
One must know oneself. If this does not serve to discover truth, it at least serves as
a rule of life, and there is nothing better.
67
The vanity of the sciences. - Physical science will not console me for the ignorance of
morality in the time of affliction. But the science of ethics will always console me for
the ignorance of the physical sciences.
68
Men are never taught to be gentlemen, and are taught everything else; and they never
plume themselves so much on the rest of their knowledge as on knowing how to be gentlemen.
They only plume themselves on knowing the one thing they do not know.
69
The infinites, the mean. - When we read too fast or too slowly, we understand nothing.
70
Nature . . . - [Nature has set us so well in the centre, that if we change one side of
the balance, we change the other also. I act. Ta SwarPexel. 2 This makes me
believe that the springs in our brain are so adjusted that he who touches one touches also
its contrary.]
[Footnote 2: "Animals run."]
71
Too much and too little wine. Give him none, he cannot find truth; give him too much,
the same.
72
Man's disproportion. - [This is where our innate knowledge leads us. If it be not true,
there is no truth in man; and if it be true, he finds therein great cause for humiliation,
being compelled to abase himself in one way or another. And since he cannot exist without
this knowledge, I wish that, before entering on deeper researches into nature, he would
consider her both seriously and at leisure, that he would reflect upon himself also, and
knowing what proportion there is ....] Let man then contemplate the whole of nature in her
full and grand majesty, and turn his vision from the low objects which surround him. Let
him gaze on that brilliant light, set like an eternal lamp to illumine the universe; let
the earth appear to him a point in comparison with the vast circle described by the sun;
and let him wonder at the fact that this vast circle is itself but a very fine point in
comparison with that described by the stars in their revolution round the firmament. But
if our view be arrested there, let our imagination pass beyond; it will sooner exhaust the
power of conception than nature that of supplying material for conception. The whole
visible world is only an imperceptible atom in the ample bosom of nature. No idea
approaches it. We may enlarge our conceptions beyond all imaginable space; we only produce
atoms in comparison with the reality of things. It is an infinite sphere, the centre of
which is everywhere, the circumference nowhere. In short it is the greatest sensible mark
of the almighty power of God, that imagination loses itself in that thought.
Returning to himself, let man consider what he is in comparison with all existence; let
him regard himself as lost in this remote corner of nature; and from the little cell in
which he finds himself lodged, I mean the universe, let him estimate at their true value
the earth, kingdoms, cities, and himself. What is a man in the Infinite?
But to show him another prodigy equally astonishing, let him examine the most delicate
things he knows. Let a mite be given him, with its minute body and parts incomparably more
minute, limbs with their joints, veins in the limbs, blood in the veins, humours in the
blood, drops in the humours, vapours in the drops. Dividing these last things again, let
him exhaust his powers of conception, and let the last object at which he can arrive be
now that of our discourse. Perhaps he will think that here is the smallest point in
nature. I will let him see therein a new abyss. I will paint for him not only the visible
universe, but all that he can conceive of nature's immensity in the womb of this abridged
atom. Let him see therein an infinity of universes, each of which has its firmament, its
planets, its earth, in the same proportion as in the visible world; in each earth animals,
and in the last mites, in which he will find again all that the first had, finding still
in these others the same thing without end and without cessation. Let him lose himself in
wonders as amazing in their littleness as the others in their vastness. For who will not
be astounded at the fact that our body, which a little ago was imperceptible, in the
universe, itself imperceptible in the bosom of the whole, is now a colossus, a world, or
rather a whole, in respect of the nothingness which we cannot reach? He who regards
himself in this light will be afraid of himself, and observing himself sustained in the
body given him by nature between those two abysses of the Infinite and Nothing, will
tremble at the sight of these marvels; and I think that, as his curiosity changes into
admiration, he will be more disposed to contemplate them in silence than to examine them
with presumption.
For in fact what is man in nature? A Nothing in comparison with the Infinite, an All in
comparison with the Nothing, a mean between nothing and everything. Since he is infinitely
removed from comprehending the extremes, the end of things and their beginning are
hopelessly hidden from him in an impenetrable secret; he is equally incapable of seeing
the Nothing from which he was made, and the Infinite in which he is swallowed up.
What will he do then, but perceive the appearance of the middle of things, in an
eternal despair of knowing either their beginning or their end. All things proceed from
the Nothing, and are borne towards the Infinite. Who will follow these marvellous
processes? The Author of these wonders understands them. None other can do so.
Through failure to contemplate these Infinites, men have rashly rushed into the
examination of nature, as though they bore some proportion to her. It is strange that they
have wished to understand the beginnings of things, and thence to arrive at the knowledge
of the whole, with a presumption as infinite as their object. For surely this design
cannot be formed without presumption or without a capacity infinite like nature.
If we are well-informed, we understand that, as nature has graven her image and that of
her Author on all things, they almost all partake of her double infinity. Thus we see that
all the sciences are infinite in the extent of their researches. For who doubts that
geometry, for instance, has an infinite infinity of problems to solve? They are also
infinite in the multitude and fineness of their premises; for it is clear that those which
are put forward as ultimate are not self-supporting, but are based on others which, again
having others for their support, do not permit of finality. But we represent some as
ultimate for reason, in the same way as in regard to material objects we call that an
indivisible point beyond which our senses can no longer perceive anything, although by its
nature it is infinitely divisible.
Of these two Infinites of science, that of greatness is the most palpable, and hence a
few persons have pretended to know all things. "I will speak of the whole," said
Democritus.
But the infinitely little is the least obvious. Philosophers have much oftener claimed
to have reached it, and it is here they have all stumbled. This has given rise to such
common titles as First Principles, Principles of Philosophy, and the like, as ostentatious
in fact, though not in appearance, as that one which blinds us, De omni scibili. 3
[Footnote 3: "Concerning everything knowable" - the title under which Pico
della Mirandola announced the 900 propositions which he undertook to defend in 1486.]
We naturally believe ourselves far more capable of reaching the centre of things than
of embracing their circumference. The visible extent of the world visibly exceeds us, but
as we exceed little things, we think ourselves more capable of knowing them. And yet we
need no less capacity for attaining the Nothing than the All. Infinite capacity is
required for both, and it seems to me that whoever shall have understood the ultimate
principles of being might also attain to the knowledge of the Infinite. The one depends on
the other, and one leads to the other. These extremes meet and reunite by force of
distance, and find each other in God, and in God alone.
Let us then take our compass; we are something, and we are not everything. The nature
of our existence hides from us the knowledge of first beginnings which are born of the
Nothing; and the littleness of our being conceals from us the sight of the Infinite.
Our intellect holds the same position in the world of thought as our body occupies in
the expanse of nature.
Limited as we are in every way, this state which holds the mean between two extremes is
present in all our impotence. Our senses perceive no extreme. Too much sound deafens us;
too much light dazzles us; too great distance or proximity hinders our view. Too great
length and too great brevity of discourse tend to obscurity; too much truth is paralysing
(I know some who cannot understand that to take four from nothing leaves nothing). First
principles are too self-evident for us; too much pleasure disagrees with us. Too many
concords are annoying in music; too many benefits irritate us; we wish to have the
wherewithal to over-pay our debts. Beneficia eo usque laeta sunt dum videntur exsolvi
posse; ubi multum antevenere, pro gratia odium redditur. 4 We feel neither
extreme heat nor exteme cold. Excessive qualities are prejudicial to us and not
perceptible by the senses; we do not feel but suffer them. Extreme youth and extreme age
hinder the mind, as also too much and too little education. In short, extremes are for us
as though they were not, and we are not within their notice. The escape us, or we them.
[Footnote 4: "Benefits are pleasant while it seems possible to requite them; when
they become much greater, they produce hatred rather than gratitude." Tacitus.]
This is our true state; this is what makes us incapable of certain knowledge and of
absolute ignorance. We sail within a vast sphere, ever drifting in uncertainty, driven
from end to end. When we think to attach ourselves to any point and to fasten to it, it
wavers and leaves us; and if we follow it, it eludes our grasp, slips past us, and
vanishes for ever. Nothing stays for us. This is our natural condition, and yet most
contrary to our inclination; we burn with desire to find solid ground and an ultimate sure
foundation whereon to build a tower reaching to the Infinite. But our whole groundwork
cracks, and the earth opens to abysses.
Let us therefore not look for certainty and stability. Our reason is always deceived by
fickle shadows; nothing can fix the finite between the two Infinites, which both enclose
and fly from it.
If this be well understood, I think that we shall remain at rest, each in the state
wherein nature has placed him. As this sphere which has fallen to us as our lot is always
distant from either extreme, what matters it that man should have a little more knowledge
of the universe? If he has it, he but gets a little higher. Is he not always infinitely
removed from the end, and is not the duration of our life equally removed from eternity,
even if it lasts ten years longer?
In comparison with these Infinites all finites are equal and I see no reason for fixing
our imagination on one more than on another. The only comparison which we make of
ourselves to the finite is painful to us.
If man made himself the first object of study, he would see how incapable he is of
going further. How can a part know the whole? But he may perhaps aspire to know at least
the parts to which he bears some proportion. But the parts of the world are all so related
and linked to one another, that I believe it impossible to know one without the other and
without the whole.
Man, for instance, is related to all he knows. He needs a place wherein to abide, time
through which to live, motion in order to live, elements to compose him, warmth and food
to nourish him, air to breathe. He sees light; he feels bodies; in short, he is in a
dependant alliance with everything. To know man, then, it is necessary to know how it
happens that he needs air to live, and, to know the air, we must know how it is thus
related to the life of man, etc. Flame cannot exist without air; therefore to understand
the one, we must understand the other.
Since everything then is cause and effect, dependant and supporting, mediate and
immediate, and all is held together by a natural though imperceptible chain, which binds
together things most distant and most different, I hold it equally impossible to know the
parts without knowing the whole, and to know the whole without knowing the parts in
detail.
[The eternity of things in itself or in God must also astonish our brief duration. The
fixed and constant immobility of nature, in comparison with the continual change which
goes on within us, must have the same effect.]
And what completes our incapability of knowing things, is the fact that they are
simple, and that we are composed of two opposite natures, different in kind, soul and
body. For it is impossible that our rational part should be other than spiritual; and if
any one maintain that we are simply corporeal, this would far more exclude us from the
knowledge of things, there being nothing so inconceivable as to say that matter knows
itself. It is impossible to imagine how it should know itself.
So if we are simply material, we can know nothing at all; and if we are composed of
mind and matter, we cannot know perfectly things which are simple, whether spiritual or
corporeal. Hence it comes that almost all philosophers have confused ideas of things, and
speak of material things in spiritual terms, and of spiritual things in material terms.
For they say boldly that bodies have a tendency to fall, that they seek after their
centre, that they fly from destruction, that they fear the void, that they have
inclinations, sympathies, antipathies, all of which attributes pertain only to mind. And
in speaking of minds, they consider them as in a place, and attribute to them movement
from one place to another; and these are qualities which belong only to bodies.
Instead of receiving the ideas of these things in their purity, we colour them with ou
own qualities, and stamp with our composite being all the simple things which we
contemplate.
Who would not think, seeing us compose all things of mind and body, but that this
mixture would be quite intelligible to us? Yet it is the very thing we least understand.
Man is to himself the most wonderful object in nature; for he cannot conceive what the
body is, still less what the mind is, and least of all how a body should be united to a
mind. This is the consummation of his difficulties, and yet it is his very being. Modus
quo corporibus adhaerent spiritus comprehendi ab hominibus non potest, et hoc tamen homo
est. 5 Finally, to complete the proof of our weakness, I shall conclude with
these two considerations . . .
[Footnote 5: "The manner in which spirits are united to bodies cannot be
understood by men, yet such is man." - St. Augustine.]
73
[But perhaps this subject goes beyond the capacity of reason. Let us therefore examine
her solutions to problems within her powers. If there be anything to which her own
interest must have made her apply herself most seriously, it is the inquiry into her own
sovereign good. Let us see, then, wherein these strong and clear-sighted souls have placed
it, and whether they agree.
One says that the sovereign good consists in virtue, another in pleasure, another in
the knowledge of nature, another in truth, Felix qui potuit rerum cognoscere causas, 6
another in total ignorance, another in indolence, others in disregarding appearances,
another in wondering at nothing, nihil admirari prope res una quae possit facere et
servare beatum, 7 and the true sceptics in their indifference, doubt, and
perpetual suspense, and others, wiser, think to find a better definition. We are well
satisfied.
[Footnote 6: "Happy he who could understand the causes of things." - Virgil.]
[Footnote 7: "To wonder at nothing is almost the only thing which can make and
keep a man happy." - Horace.]
To transpose after the laws to the following title.
We must see if this fine philosophy have gained nothing certain from so long and so
intent study; perhaps at least the soul will know itself. Let us hear the rulers of the
world on this subject. What have they thought of her substance? 394. 8 Have
they been more fortunate in locating her? 395. 8 What have they found out about
her origin, duration, and departure? 399. 8
Is then the soul too noble a subject for their feeble lights? Let us then abase her to
matter and see if she knows whereof is made the very body which she animates, and those
others which she contemplates and moves at her will. What have those great dogmatists, who
are ignorant of nothing, known of this matter? Harum sententiarum, 393. 8
[Footnote 8: References to Montaigne's Essays, ii. 12.]
This would doubtless suffice, if reason were reasonable. She is reasonable enough to
admit that she has been unable to find anything durable, but she does not yet despair of
reaching it; she is as ardent as ever in this search, and is confident she has within her
the necessary powers for this conquest. We must therefore conclude, and, after having
examined her powers in their effects, observe them in themselves, and see if she has a
nature and a grasp capable of laying hold of the truth.]
74
A letter on the foolishness of human knowledge and philosophy. This letter before
Diversion. Felix qui potuit 6 . . . Nihil admirari. 7 280 kinds of
sovereign good in Montaigne.
[Footnote 6: "Happy he who could understand the causes of things." - Virgil.]
[Footnote 7: "To wonder at nothing is almost the only thing which can make and
keep a man happy." - Horace.]
75
Part I., 1, 2, c. 1, section 4.
[Probability. - it will not be difficult to put the case a stage lower, and make it
appear ridiculous. To begin at the very beginning.] What is more absurd than to say that
lifeless bodies have passions, fears, hatreds, - that insensible bodies, lifeless and
incapable of life, have passions which presuppose at least a sensitive soul to feel them,
nay more, that the object of their dread is the void? What is there in the void that could
make them afraid? Nothing is more shallow and ridiculous. This is not all; it is said that
they have in themselves a source of movement to shun the void. Have they arms, legs,
muscles, nerves?
76
To write against those who made too profound a study of science. Descartes.
77
I cannot forgive Descartes. In all his philosophy he would have been quite willing to
dispense with God. But he had to make Him give a fillip to set the world in motion; beyond
this, he has no further need of God.
78
Descartes useless and uncertain.
79
[Descartes. - We must say summarily: "This is made by figure and motion," for
it is true. But to say what these are, and to compose the machine, is ridiculous. For it
is useless, uncertain, and painful. And were it true, we do not think all philosophy is
worth one hour of pain.]
80
How comes it that a cripple does not offend us, but that a fool does? Because a cripple
recognizes that we walk straight, whereas a fool declares that it is we who are silly; if
it were not so, we should feel pity and not anger.
Epictetus asks still more strongly: "Why are we not angry if we are told that we
have a headache, and why are we angry if we are told that we reason badly, or choose
wrongly?" The reason is that we are quite certain that we have not a headache, or are
not lame, but we are not so sure that we make a true choice. So having assurance only
because we see with our whole sight, it puts us into suspense and surprise when another
with his whole sight sees the opposite, and still more so when a thousand others deride
our choice. For we must prefer our own lights to those of so many others, and that is bold
and difficult. There is never this contradiction in the feelings towards a cripple.
81
It is natural for the mind to believe, and for the will to love; so that, for want of
true objects, they must attach themselves to false.
82
Imagination. - It is that deceitful part in man, that mistress of error and falsity,
the more deceptive that she is not always so; for she would be an infallible rule of
truth, if she were an infallible rule of falsehood. But being most generally false, she
gives no sign of her nature, impressing the same character on the true and the false.
I do not speak of fools, I speak of the wisest men; and it is among them that the
imagination has the great gift of persuasion. Reason protests in vain; it cannot set a
true value on things.
This arrogant power, the enemy of reason, who likes to rule and dominate it, has
established in man a second nature to show how all-powerful she is. She makes men happy
and sad, healthy and sick, rich and poor; she compels reason to believe, doubt, and deny;
she blunts the senses, or quickens them; she has her fools and sages; and nothing vexes us
more than to see that she fills her devotees with a satisfaction far more full and entire
than does reason. Those who have a lively imagination are a great deal more pleased with
themselves than the wise can reasonably be. They look down upon men with haughtiness; they
argue with boldness and confidence, others with fear and diffidence; and this gaiety of
countenance often gives them the advantage in the opinion of the hearers, such favour have
the imaginary wise in the eyes of judges of like nature. Imagination cannot make fools
wise; but she can make them happy, to the envy of reason which can only make its friends
miserable; the one covers them with glory, the other with shame.
What but this faculty of imagination dispenses reputation, awards respect and
veneration to persons, works, laws, and the great? How insufficient are all the riches of
the earth without her consent!
Would you not say that this magistrate, whose venerable age commands the respect of a
whole people, is governed by pure and lofty reason, and that he judges causes according to
their true nature without considering those mere trifles which only affect the imagination
of the weak? See him go to sermon, full of devout zeal, strengthening his reason with the
ardour of his love. He is ready to listen with exemplary respect. Let the preacher appear,
and let nature have given him a hoarse voice or a comical cast of countenance, or let his
barber have given him a bad shave, or let by chance his dress be more dirtied than usual,
then however great the truths he announces, I wager our senator lose his gravity.
If the greatest philosopher in the world find himself upon a plank wider than actually
necessary, but hanging over a precipice, his imagination will prevail, though his reason
convince him of his safety. Many cannot bear the thought without a cold sweat. I will not
state all its effects.
Every one knows that the sight of cats or rats, the crushing of a coal, etc., may
unhinge the reason. The tone of voice affects the wisest, and changes the force of a
discourse or a poem.
Love or hate alters the aspect of justice. How much greater confidence has an advocate,
retained with a large fee, in the justice of his cause! How much better does his bold
manner make his case appear to the judges, deceived as they are by appearances! How
ludicrous is reason, blown with a breath in every direction!
I should have to enumerate almost every action of men who scarce waver save under her
assaults. For reason has been obliged to yield, and the wisest reason takes as her own
principles those which the imagination of man has everywhere rashly introduced. [He who
would follow reason only would be deemed foolish by the generality of men. We must judge
by the opinion of the majority of mankind. Because it has pleased them, we must work all
day for pleasures seen to be imaginary; and after sleep has refreshed our tired reason, we
must forthwith start up and rush after phantoms, and suffer the impressions of this
mistress of the world. This is one of the sources of error, but it is not the only one.]
Our magistrates have known well this mystery. Their red robes, the ermine in which they
wrap themselves like furry cats, the courts in which they administer justice, the
fleurs-de-lis, and all such august apparel were necessary; if the physicians had not their
cassocks and their mules, if the doctors had not their square caps and their robes four
times too wide, they would never have duped the world, which cannot resist so original an
appearance. If magistrates had true justice, and if physicians had the true art of
healing, they would have no occasion for square caps; the majesty of these sciences would
of itself be venerable enough. But having only imaginary knowledge, they must employ those
silly tools that strike the imagination with which they have to deal; and thereby in fact
they inspire respect. Soldiers alone are not disguised in this manner, because indeed
their part is the most essential; they establish themselves by force, the others by show.
Therefore our kings seek out no disguises. They do not mask themselves in extraordinary
costumes to appear such; but they are accompanied by guards and halberdiers. Those armed
and redfaced puppets who have hands and power for them alone, those trumpets and drums
which go before them, and those legions round about them, make the stoutest tremble. They
have not dress only, they have might. A very refined reason is required to regard as an
ordinary man the Grank Turk, in his superb seraglio, surrounded by forty thousand
janissaries.
We cannot even see an advocate in his robe and with his cap on his head, without a
favourable opinion of his ability. The imagination disposes of everything; it makes
beauty, justice, and happiness, which is everything in the world. I should much like to
see an Italian work, of which I only know the title, which alone is worth many books,
Della opinione regina del mondo. 9 I approve of the book without knowing it,
save the evil in it, if any. These are pretty much the effects of the deceptive faculty,
which seems to have been expressly given us to lead us into necessary error. We have,
however, many other sources of error.
[Footnote 9: "On opinion, queen of the world." The book has not been
certainly identified.]
Not only are old impressions capable of misleading us; the charms of novelty have the
same power. Hence arise all the disputes of men, who taunt each other either with
following the false impressions of childhood, or with running rashly after the new. Who
keeps the due mean? Let him appear and prove it. There is no principle, however natural to
us from infancy, which may not be made to pass for a false impression either of education
or of sense.
"Because," say some, "you have believed from childhood that a box was
empty when you saw nothing in it, you have believed in the possibility of a vacuum. This
is an illusion of your senses, strengthened by custom, which science must correct."
"Because," say others, "you have been taught at school that there is no
vacuum, you have perverted your common sense which clearly comprehended it, and you must
correct this by returning to your first state." Which has deceived you, your senses
or your education?
We have another source of error in diseases. They spoil the judgment and the senses;
and if the more serious produce a sensible change, I do not doubt that slighter ills
produce a proportionate impression.
Our own interest is again a marvellous instrument for nicely putting out our eyes. The
justest man in the world is not allowed to be judge in his own cause; I know some who, in
order not to fall into this self-love, have been perfectly unjust out of opposition. The
sure way of losing a just cause has been to get it recommended to these men by their near
relatives.
Justice and truth are two such subtle points, that our tools are too blunt to touch
them accurately. If they reach the point, they either crush it, or lean all round, more on
the false than on the true.
[Man is so happily formed that he has no . . . good of the true, and several excellent
of the false. Let us now see how much . . . But the most powerful cause of error is the
war existing between the senses and reason.]
Part II
83
We must thus begin the chapter on the deceptive powers. Man is only a subject full of
error, natural and ineffaceable, without grace. Nothing shows him the truth. Everything
deceives him. These two sources of truth, reason and the senses, besides being both
wanting in sincerity, deceive each other in turn. The senses mislead the reason with false
appearances, and receive from reason in their turn the same trickery which they apply to
her; reason has her revenge. The passions of the soul trouble the senses, and make false
impressions upon them. They rival each other in falsehood and deception.
But besides those errors which arise accidentally and through lack of intelligence,
with these heterogeneous faculties . . .
84
The imagination enlarges little objects so as to fill our soul with a fantastic
estimate; and, with rash insolence, it belittles the great to its own measure, as when
talking of God.
85
Things which have most hold on us, as the concealment of our few possessions, are often
a mere nothing. It is a nothing which our imagination magnifies into a mountain. Another
turn of the imagination would make us discover this without difficulty.
86
[My fancy makes me hate a croaker, and one who pants when eating. Fancy has great
weight. Shall we profit by it? Shall we yield to this weight because it is natural? No,
but resisting it. . . .]
87
Quasi quidquam infelicius sit homini cui sua figmenta dominantur. 10
[Footnote 10: "As if anything more unfortunate could happen to a man ruled by his
own fancies. - Pliny.]
88
Children who are frightened at the face they have blackened are but children. But how
shall one who is so weak in his childhood become really strong when he grows older? We
only change our fancies. All that is made perfect by progress perishes also by progress.
All that has been weak can never become absolutely strong. We say in vain, "He has
grown, he has changed"; he is also the same.
89
Custom is our nature. He who is accustomed to the faith believes in it, can no longer
fear hell, and believes in nothing else. He who is accustomed to believe that the king is
terrible . . . &c. Who doubts then that our soul, being accustomed to see number,
space, motion, believes that and nothing else?
90
Quod crebro videt non miratur, etiamsi cur fiat nescit; quod ante non viderit, id si
evenerit, ostentum esse censet. 11
Nae iste magno conatu magnas nugas dixerit. 12
[Footnote 11: "What a man sees often he does not wonder at, although he knows not
why it happens; if something occurs which he has not seen before, he thinks it a
marvel." - Cicero.]
[Footnote 12: "Verily, that man will have uttered great trifles with huge
effort." - Terence.]
91
Spongia solis. 13 - When we see the same effect always recur, we infer a
natural necessity in it, as that there will be a to-morrow, &c. But nature often
deceives us, and does not subject herself to her own rules.
[Footnote 13: "Spots on the sun."]
92
What are our natural principles but principles of custom? In children they are those
which they have received from the habits of their fathers, as hunting in animals. A
different custom will cause different natural principles. This is seen in experience; and
if there are some natural principles ineradicable by custom, there are also some customs
opposed to nature, ineradicable by nature, or by a second custom. This depends on
disposition.
93
Parents fear lest the natural love of their children may fade away. What kind of nature
is that which is subject to decay? Custom is a second nature which destroys the former.
But what is nature? For is custom not natural? I am much afraid that nature is itself only
a first custom, as custom is a second nature.
94
The nature of man is wholly natural, omne animal. 14
[Footnote 14: "All animal."]
There is nothing he may not make natural; there is nothing natural he may not lose.
95
Memory, joy, are intuitions; and even mathematical propositions become intuitions, for
education produces natural intuitions, and natural intuitions are erased by education.
96
When we are accustomed to use bad reasons for proving natural effects, we are not
willing to receive good reasons when they are discovered. An example may be given from the
circulation of the blood as a reason why the vein swells below the ligature.
97
The most important affair in life is the choice of a calling; chance decides it. Custom
makes men masons, soldiers, slaters. "He is a good slater," says one, and,
speaking of soldiers, remarks, "They are perfect fools." But others affirm
"There is nothing great but war, the rest of men are good-for-nothing." We
choose our callings according as we hear this or that praised or despised in our
childhood, for we naturally love truth and hate folly. These words move us; the only error
is in their application. So great is the force of custom that out of those whom nature has
only made men, are created all conditions of men. For some districts are full of masons,
others of soldiers, &c. Certainly nature is not so uniform. It is custom then which
does this, for it constrains nature. But sometimes nature gains the ascendency, and
preserves man's instinct, in spite of all custom, good or bad.
98
Bias leading to error. - It is a deplorable thing to see all men deliberating on means
alone, and not on the end. Each thinks how he will acquit himself in his condition; but as
for the choice of condition, or of country, chance gives them to us.
It is a pitiable thing to see so many Turks, heretics and infidels, follow the way of
their fathers for the sole reason that each has been imbued with the prejudice that it is
the best. And that fixes for each man his condition of locksmith, soldier, &c.
Hence savages care nothing for Provence.
99
There is an universal and essential difference between the actions of the will and all
other actions.
The will is one of the chief factors in belief, not that it creates belief, but because
things are true or false according to the aspect in which we look at them. The will, which
prefers one aspect to another, turns away the mind from considering the qualities of all
that it does not like to see; and thus the mind, moving in accord with the will, stops to
consider the aspect which it likes, and so judges by what it sees.
100
Self-love. - The nature of self-love and of this human Ego is to love self only and
consider self only. But what will man do? He cannot prevent this object that he loves from
being full of faults and wants. He wants to be great, and he sees himself small. He wants
to be happy, and he sees himself miserable. He wants to be perfect, and he sees himself
full of imperfections. He wants to be the object of love and esteem among men, and he sees
that his faults merit only their hatred and contempt. This embarrassment in which he finds
himself produces in him the most unrighteous and criminal passion that can be imagined;
for he conceives a mortal enmity against that truth which reproves him, and which
convinces him of his faults. He would annihilate it, but, unable to destroy it in its
essence, he destroys it as far as possible in his own knowledge and in that of others;
that is to say, he devotes all his attention to hiding his faults both from others and
from himself, and he cannot endure either that others should point them out to him, or
that they should see them.
Truly it is an evil to be full of faults; but it is a still greater evil to be full of
them, and to be unwilling to recognise them, since that is to add the further fault of a
voluntary illusion. We do not like others to deceive us; we do not think it fair that they
should be held in higher esteem by us than they deserve; it is not then fair that we
should deceive them, and should wish them to esteem us more highly than we deserve.
Thus, when they discover only the imperfections and vices which we really have, it is
plain they do us no wrong, since it is not they who cause them; they rather do us good,
since they help us to free ourselves from an evil, namely, the ignorance of these
imperfections. We ought not to be angry at their knowing our faults and despising us; it
is but right that they should know us for what we are, and should despise us, if we are
contemptible.
Such are the feelings that would arise in a heart full of equity and justice. What must
we say then of our own heart, when we see in it a wholly different disposition? For is it
not true that we hate truth and those who tell it us, and that we like them to be deceived
in our favour, and prefer to be esteemed by them as being other than what we are in fact?
One proof of this makes me shudder. The Catholic religion does not bind us to confess our
sins indiscriminately to everybody; it allows them to remain hidden from all other men
save one, to whom she bids us reveal the innermost recesses of our heart, and show
ourselves as we are. There is only this one man in the world whom she orders us to
undeceive, and she binds him to an inviolable secrecy, which makes this knowledge to him
as if it were not. Can we imagine anything more charitable and pleasant? And yet the
corruption of man is such that he finds even this law harsh; and it is one of the main
reasons which have caused a great part of Europe to rebel against the Church.
How unjust and unreasonable is the heart of man, which feels it disagreeable to be
obliged to do in regard to one man what in some measure it were right to do to all men!
For is it right that we should deceive men?
There are different degrees in this aversion to truth; but all may perhaps be said to
have it in some degree, because it is inseparable from self-love. It is this false
delicacy which makes those who are under the necessity of reproving others choose so many
windings and middle courses to avoid offence. They must lessen our faults, appear to
excuse them, intersperse praises and evidence of love and esteem. Despite all this, the
medicine does not cease to be bitter to self-love. It takes as little as it can, always
with disgust, and often with a secret spite against those who administer it.
Hence it happens that if any have some interest in being loved by us, they are averse
to render us a service which they know to be disagreeable. They treat us as we wish to be
treated. We hate the truth, and they hide it from us. We desire flattery, and they flatter
us. We like to be deceived, and they deceive us.
So each degree of good fortune which raises us in the world removes us further from
truth, because we are most afraid of wounding those whose affection is most useful and
whose dislike is most dangerous. A prince may be the byword of all Europe, and he alone
will know nothing of it. I am not astonished; to tell the truth is useful to whom it is
spoken, but disadvantageous to those who tell it, because it makes them disliked. Now
those who live with princes love their own interests more than that of the prince whom
they serve; and so they take care not to confer on him a benefit so as to injure
themselves.
This evil is no doubt greater and more common among the higher classes; but the lower
are not exempt from it, since there is always some advantage in making men love us. Human
life is thus only a perpetual illusion; men deceive and flatter each other. No one speaks
of us in our presence as he does of us in our absence. Human society is founded on mutual
deceit; few friendships would endure if each knew what his friend said of him in his
absence, although he then spoke in sincerity and without passion.
Man is then only disguise, falsehood, and hypocrisy, both in himself and in regard to
others. He does not wish any one to tell him the truth; he avoids telling it to others,
and all these dispositions, so removed from justice and reason, have a natural root in his
heart.
101
I set it down as a fact that if all men knew what each said of the other, there would
not be four friends in the world. This is apparent from the quarrels which arise from the
indiscreet tales told from time to time. I say, further, all men would be ...
102
Some vices only lay hold of us by means of others, and these, like branches, fall on
removal of the trunk.
103
The example of Alexander's chastity has not made so many continent as that of his
drunkenness has made intemperate. It is not shameful not to be as virtuous as he, and it
seems excusable to be no more vicious. We do not believe ourselves to be exactly sharing
in the vices of the vulgar, when we see that we are sharing in those of great men; and yet
we do not observe that in these matters they are ordinary men. We hold on to them by the
same end by which they hold on to the rabble; for, however exalted they are, they are
still united at some point to the lowest of men. They are not suspended in the air, quite
removed from our society. No, no; if they are greater than we, it is because their heads
are higher; but their feet are as low as ours. They are all on the same level, and rest on
the same earth; and by that extremity they are as low as we are, as the meanest folk, as
infants, and as the beasts.
104
When our passion leads us to do something, we forget our duty; for example, we like a
book and read it, when we ought to be doing something else. Now, to remind ourselves of
our duty, we must set ourselves a task we dislike; we then plead that we have something
else to do, and by this means remember our duty.
105
How difficult it is to submit anything to the judgment of another, without prejudicing
his judgment by the manner in which we submit it! If we say, "I think it
beautiful," "I think it obscure," or the like, we either entice the
imagination into that view, or irritate it to the contrary. It is better to say nothing;
and then the other judges according to what really is, that is to say, according as it
then is, and according as the other circumstances, not of our making, have placed it. But
we at least shall have added nothing, unless it be that silence also produces an effect,
according to the turn and the interpretation which the other will be disposed to give it,
or as he will guess it from gestures or countenance, or from the tone of the voice, if he
is a physiognomist. So difficult is it not to upset a judgment from its natural place, or
rather so rarely is it firm and stable.
106
By knowing each man's ruling passion, we are sure of pleasing him; and yet each has his
fancies, opposed to his true good, in the very idea which he has of the good. It is a
singularly puzzling fact.
107
Lustravit lampade terras. 15 - The weather and my mood have little
connection. I have my foggy and my fine days within me; my prosperity or misfortune has
little to do with the matter. I sometimes struggle against luck, the glory of mastering it
makes me master it gaily; whereas I am sometimes surfeited in the midst of good fortune.
[Footnote 15: "He has illumined the earth with a lamp."]
108
Although people may have no interest in what they are saying, we must not absolutely
conclude from this that they are not lying; for there are some people who lie for the mere
sake of lying.
109
When we are well we wonder what we would do if we were ill, but when we are ill we take
medicine cheerfully; the illness persuades us to do so. We have no longer the passions and
desires for amusements and promenades which health gave to us, but which are incompatible
with the necessities of illness. Nature gives us, then, passions and desires suitable to
our present state. We are only troubled by the fears which we, and not nature, give
ourselves, for they add to the state in which we are the passions of the state in which we
are not.
As nature makes us always unhappy in every state, our desires picture to us a happy
state; because they add to the state in which we are the pleasures of the state in which
we are not. And if we attained to these pleasures, we should not be happy after all;
because we should have other desires natural to this new state.
We must particularise this general proposition. . . .
110
The consciousness of the falsity of present pleasures, and the ignorance of the vanity
of absent pleasures, cause inconstancy.
111
Inconstancy. - We think we are playing on ordinary organs when playing upon man. Men
are organs, it is true, but, odd, changeable, variable [with pipes not arranged in proper
order]. Those who only know how to play on ordinary organs will not produce harmonies on
these. We must know where [the keys] are.
112
Inconstancy. - Things have different qualities, and the soul different inclinations;
for nothing is simple which is presented to the soul, and the soul never presents itself
simply to any object. Hence it comes that we weep and laugh at the same thing.
113
Inconstancy and oddity. - To live only by work, and to rule over the most powerful
State in the world, are very opposite things. They are united in the person of the great
Sultan of the Turks.
Part III
114
Variety is as abundant as all tones of the voice, all ways of walking, coughing,
blowing the nose, sneezing. We distinguish vines by their fruit, and call them the
Condrien, the Desargues, and such and such a stock. Is this all? Has a vine ever produced
two bunches exactly the same, and has a bunch two grapes alike? &c.
I can never judge of the same thing exactly in the same way. I cannot judge of my work,
while doing it. I must do as the artists, stand at a distance, but not too far. How far
then? Guess.
115
Variety. - Theology is a science, but at the same time how many sciences? A man is a
whole; but if we dissect him, will he be the head, the heart, the stomach, the veins, each
vein, each portion of a vein, the blood, each humour in the blood?
A town, a country-place, is from afar a town and a country-place. But, as we draw near,
there are houses, trees, tiles, leaves, grass, ants, limbs of ants, in infinity. All this
is contained under the name of country-place.
116
Thoughts. - All is one, all is different. How many natures exist in man? How many
vocations? And by what chance does each man ordinarily choose what he has heard praised? A
well-turned heel.
117
The heel of a slipper. - "Ah! How well this is turned! Here is a clever workman!
How brave is this soldier!" This is the source of our inclinations, and of the choice
of conditions. "How much this man drinks! How little that one!" This makes
people sober or drunk, soldiers, cowards, &c.
118
Chief talent, that which rules the rest.
119
Nature imitates herself. A seed sown in good ground brings forth fruit. A principle,
instilled into good mind, brings forth fruit. Numbers imitate space, which is of a
different nature.
All is made and led by the same master, root, branches, and fruits; principles and
consequences.
120
[Nature diversifies and imitates; art imitates and diversifies.]
121
Nature always begins the same things again, the years, the days, the hours; in like
manner spaces and numbers follow each other from beginning to end. Thus is made a kind of
infinity and eternity. Not that anything in all this is infinite and eternal, but these
finite realities are infinitely multiplied. Thus it seems to me to be only the number
which multiplies them that is infinite.
122
Time heals griefs and quarrels, for we change and are no longer the same persons.
Neither the offender nor the offended are any more themselves. It is like a nation which
we have provoked, but meet again after two generations. They are still Frenchmen, but not
the same.
123
He no longer loves the person whom he loved ten years ago. I quite believe it. She is
no longer the same, nor is he. He was young, and she also; she is quite different. He
would perhaps love her yet, if she were what she was then.
124
We view things not only from different sides, but with different eyes; we have no wish
to find them alike.
125
Contraries. - Man is naturally credulous and incredulous, timid and rash.
126
Description of man: dependency, desire of independence, need.
127
Condition of man: inconstancy, weariness, unrest.
128
The weariness which is felt by us in leaving pursuits to which we are attached. A man
dwells at home with pleasure; but if he sees a woman who charms him, or if he enjoys
himself in play for five or six days, he is miserable if he return to his former way of
living. Nothing is more common than that.
129
Our nature consists in motion; complete rest is death.
130
Restlessness. - If a soldier, or labourer, complain of the hardship of his lot, set him
to do nothing.
131
Weariness. - Nothing is so insufferable to man as to be completely at rest, without
passions, without business, without diversion, without study. He then feels his
nothingness, his forlornness, his insufficiency, his dependence, his weakness, his
emptiness. There will immediately arise from the depth of his heart weariness, gloom,
sadness, fretfulness, vexation, despair.
132
Methinks Caesar was too old to set about amusing himself with conquering the wfrld.
Such sport was good for Augustus or Alexander. They were still young men, and thus
difficult to restrain. But Caesar should have been more mature.
133
Two faces which resemble each other, make us laugh, when together, by their
resemblance, though neither of them by itself makes us laugh.
134
How useless is painting, which attracts admiration by the resemblance of things, the
originals of which we do not admire!
135
The struggle alone pleases us, not the victory. We love to see animals fighting, not
the victor infuriated over the vanquished. We would only see the victorious end; and, as
soon as it comes, we are satiated. It is the same in play and the same in the search for
truth. In disputes we like to see the clash of opinions, but not at all to contemplate
truth when found. To observe it with pleasure, we have to see it emerge out of strife. So
in the passions, there is pleasure in seeing the collision of two contraries; but when one
acquires the mastery, it becomes only brutality. We never seek things for themselves, but
for the search. Likewise in plays, scenes which do not rouse the emotion of fear are
worthless, so are extreme and hopeless misery, brutal lust, and extreme cruelty.
136
A mere trifle consoles us, for a mere trifle distresses us.
137
Without examining every particular pursuit, it is enough to comprehend them under
diversion.
138
Men naturally slaters and of all callings, save in their own rooms.
139
Diversion. - When I have occasionally set myself to consider the different distractions
of men, the pains and perils to which they expose themselves at court or in war, whence
arise so many quarrels, passions, bold and often bad ventures, &c., I have discovered
that all the unhappiness of men arises from one single fact, that they cannot stay quietly
in their own chamber. A man who has enough to live on, if he knew how to stay with
pleasure at home, would not leave it to go to sea or to besiege a town. A commission in
the army would not be bought so dearly, but that it is found insufferable not to budge
from the town; and men only seek conversation and entertaining games, because they cannot
remain with pleasure at home.
But on further consideration, when, after finding the cause of all our ills, I have
sought to discover the reason of it, I have found that there is one very real reason,
namely, the natural poverty of our feeble and mortal condition, so miserable that nothing
can comfort us when we think of it closely.
Whatever condition we picture to ourselves, if we muster all the good things which it
is possible to possess, royalty is the finest position in the world. Yet, when we imagine
a king attended with every pleasure he can feel, if he be without diversion, and be left
to consider and reflect on what he is, this feeble happiness will not sustain him; he will
necessarily fall into forebodings of dangers, of revolutions which may happen, and,
finally, of death and inevitable disease; so that if he be without what is called
diversion, he is unhappy, and more unhappy than the least of his subjects who plays and
diverts himself.
Hence it comes that play and the society of women, war, and high posts, are so sought
after. Not that there is in fact any happiness in them, or that men imagine true bliss to
consist in money won at play, or in the hare which they hunt; we would not take these as a
gift. We do not seek that easy and peaceful lot which permits us to think of our unhappy
condition, nor the dangers of war, nor the labour of office, but the bustle which averts
these thoughts of ours, and amuses us.
Reasons why we like the chase better than the quarry.
Hence it comes that men so much love noise and stir; hence it comes that the prison is
so horrible a punishment; hence it comes that the pleasure of solitude is a thing
incomprehensible. And it is in fact the greatest source of happiness in the condition of
kings, that men try incessantly to divert them, and to procure for them all kinds of
pleasures.
The king is surrounded by persons whose only thought is to divert the king, and to
prevent his thinking of self. For he is unhappy, king though he be, if he think of
himself.
This is all that men have been able to discover to make themselves happy. And those who
philosophise on the matter, and who think men unreasonable for spending a whole day in
chasing a hare which they would not have bought, scarce know our nature. The hare in
itself would not screen us from the sight of death and calamities; but the chase which
turns away our attention from these, does screen us.
The advice given to Pyrrhus to take the rest which he was about to seek with so much
labour, was full of difficulties.
[To bid a man live quietly is to bid him live happily. It is to advise him to be in a
state perfectly happy, in which he can think at leisure without finding therein a cause of
distress. This is to misunderstand nature.
As men who naturally understand their own condition avoid nothing so much as rest, so
there is nothing they leave undone in seeking turmoil. Not that they have an instinctive
knowledge of true happiness. . . .
So we are wrong in blaming them. Their error does not lie in seeking excitement, if
they seek it only as a diversion; the evil is that they seek it as if the possession of
the objects of their quest would make them really happy. In this respect it is right to
call their quest a vain one. Hence in all this both the censurers and the censured do not
understand man's true nature.]
And thus, when we take the exception against them, that what they seek with such
fervour cannot satisfy them, if they replied - as they should do if they considered the
matter thoroughly - that they sought in it only a violent and impetuous occupation which
turned their thoughts from self, and that they therefore chose an attractive object to
charm and ardently attract them, they would leave their opponents without a reply. But
they do not make this reply, because they do not know themselves. They do not know that it
is the chase, and not the quarry, which they seek.
[Dancing: we must consider rightly where to place our feet.
- A gentleman sincerely believes that hunting is great and royal sport; but a beater is
not of this opinion.]
They imagine that if they obtained such a post, they would then rest with pleasure, and
are insensible of the insatiable nature of their desire. They think they are truly seeking
quiet, and they are only seeking excitement.
They have a secret instinct which impels them to seek amusement and occupation abroad,
and which arises from the sense of their constant unhappiness. They have another secret
instinct, a remnant of the greatness of our original nature, which teaches them that
happiness in reality consists only in rest, and not in stir. And of these two contrary
instincts they form within themselves a confused idea, which hides itself from their view
in the depths of their soul, inciting them to aim at rest through excitement, and always
to fancy that the satisfaction which they have not will come to them, if, by surmounting
whatever difficulties confront them, they can thereby open the door to rest.
Thus passes away all man's life. Men seek rest in a struggle against difficulties; and
when they have conquered these, rest becomes insufferable. For we think either of the
misfortunes we have or of those which threaten us. And even if we should see ourselves
sufficiently sheltered on all sides, weariness of its own accord would not fail to arise
from the depths of the heart wherein it has its natural roots, and to fill the mind with
its poison.
Thus so wretched is man that he would weary even without any cause for weariness from
the peculiar state of his disposition; and so frivolous is he, that, though full of a
thousand reasons for weariness, the least thing, such as playing billiards or hitting a
ball, is sufficient to amuse him.
But will you say what object has he in all this? The pleasure of bragging to-morrow
among his friends that he has played better than another. So others sweat in their own
rooms to show to the learned that they have solved a problem in Algebra, which no one had
hitherto been able to solve. Many more expose themselves to extreme perils, in my opinion
as foolishly, in order to boast afterwards that they have captured a town. Lastly, others
wear themselves out in studying all these things, not in order to become wiser, but only
in order to prove that they know them; and these are the most senseless of the band, since
they are so knowingly, whereas one may suppose of the others, that if they knew it, they
would no longer be foolish.
This man spends his life without weariness in playing every day for a small stake. Give
him each morning the money he can win each day, on condition he does not play; you make
him miserable. It will perhaps be said that he seeks the amusement of play and not the
winnings. Make him then play for nothing; he will not become excited over it, and will
feel bored. It is then not the amusement alone that he seeks; a languid and passionless
amusement will weary him. He must get excited over it, and deceive himself by the fancy
that he will be happy to win what he would not have as a gift on condition of not playing;
and he must make for himself an object of passion, and excite over it his desire, his
anger, his fear, to obtain his imagined end, as children are frightened at the face they
have blackened.
Whence comes it that this man, who lost his only son a few months ago, or who this
morning was in such trouble through being distressed by lawsuits and quarrels, now no
longer thinks of them? Do not wonder; he is quite taken up in looking out for the boar
which his dogs have been hunting so hotly for the last six hours. He requires nothing
more. However full of sadness a man may be, he is happy for the time, if you can prevail
upon him to enter into some amusement; and however happy a man may be, he will soon be
discontented and wretched, if he be not diverted and occupied by some passion or pursuit
which prevents weariness from overcoming him. Without amusement there is no joy; with
amusement there is no sadness. And this also constitutes the happiness of persons in high
position, that they have a number of people to amuse them, and have the power to keep
themselves in this state.
Consider this. What is it to be superintendent, chancellor, first president, but to be
in a condition wherein from early morning a large number of people come from all quarters
to see them, so as not to leave them an hour in the day in which they can think of
themselves? And when they are in disgrace and sent back to their country houses, where
they lack neither wealth nor servants to help them on occasion, they do not fail to be
wretched and desolate, because no one prevents them from thinking of themselves.
140
[How does it happen that this man, so distressed at the death of his wife and his only
son, or who has some great lawsuit which annoys him, is not at this moment sad, and that
he seems so free from all painful and disquieting thoughts? We need not wonder; for a ball
has been served him, and he must return it to his companion. He is occupied in catching it
in its fall from the roof, to win a game. How can he think of his own affairs, pray, when
he has this other matter in hand? Here is a care worthy of occupying this great soul, and
taking away from him every other thought of the mind. This man, born to know the universe,
to judge all causes, to govern a whole state, is altogether occupied and taken up with the
business of catching a hare. And if he does not lower himself to this, and wants always to
be on the strain, he will be more foolish still, because he would raise himself above
humanity; and after all he is only a man, that is to say capable of little and of much, of
all and of nothing; he is neither angel nor brute, but man.]
141
Men spend their time in following a ball or a hare; it is the pleasure even of kings.
142
Diversion. - Is not the royal dignity sufficiently great in itself to make its
possessor happy by the mere contemplation of what he is? Must he be diverted from this
thought like ordinary folk? I see well that a man is made happy by diverting him from the
view of his domestic sorrows so as to occupy all his thoughts with the care of dancing
well. But will it be the same with a king, and will he be happier in the pursuit of these
idle amusements than in the contemplation of his greatness? And what more satisfactory
object could be presented to his mind? Would it not be a deprivation of his delight for
him to occupy his soul with the thought of how to adjust his steps to the cadence of an
air, or of how to throw a [ball] skilfully, instead of leaving it to enjoy quietly the
contemplation of the majestic glory which encompasses him? Let us make the trial; let us
leave a king all alone to reflect on himself quite at leisure, without any gratification
of the senses without any care in his mind, without society; and we will see that a king
without diversion is a man full of wretchedness. So this is carefully avoided, and near
the persons of kings there never fail to be a great number of people who see to it that
amusement follows business, and who watch all the time of their leisure to supply them
with delights and games, so that there is no blank in it. In fact kings are surrounded
with persons who are wonderfully attentive in taking care that the king be not alone and
in a state to think of himself, knowing well that he will be miserable, king though he be,
if he meditate on self.
In all this I am not talking of Christian kings as Christians, but only as kings.
143
Diversion. - Men are intrusted from infancy with the care of their honour, their
property, their friends, and even with the property and the honour of their friends. They
are overwhelmed with business, with the study of languages, and with physical exercise;
and they are made to understand that they cannot be happy unless their health, their
honour, their fortune and that of their friends be in good condition, and that a single
thing wanting will make them unhappy. Thus they are given cares and business which make
them bustle about from break of day. - It is, you will exclaim, a strange way to make them
happy! What more could be done to make them miserable? - Indeed! what could be done? We
should only have to relieve them from all these cares; for then they would see themselves:
they would reflect on what they are, whence they came, whither they go, and thus we cannot
employ and divert them too much. And this is why, after having given them so much
business, we advise them, if they have some time for relaxation, to employ it in
amusement, in play, and to be always fully occupied.
How hollow and full of ribaldry is the heart of man!
144
I spent a long time in the study of the abstract sciences, and was disheartened by the
small number of fellow-students in them. When I commenced the study of man, I saw that
these abstract sciences are not suited to man, and that I was wandering further from my
own state in examining them, than others in not knowing them. I pardoned their little
knowledge; but I thought at least to find many companions in the study of man, and that it
was the true study which is suited to him. I have been deceived; still fewer study it than
geometry. It is only from want of knowing how to study this that we seek the other
studies. But is it not that even here is not the knowledge which man should have, and that
for the purposes of happiness it is better for him not to know himself?
145
[One thought alone occupies us; we cannot think of two things at the same time. This is
lucky for us according to the world, not according to God.]
146
Man is obviously made to think. It is his whole dignity and his whole merit; and his
whole duty is to think as he ought. Now, the order of thought is to begin with self, and
with its Author and its end.
Now, of what does the world think? Never of this, but of dancing, playing the lute,
singing, making verses, running at the ring, &c., fighting, making oneself king,
without thinking what it is to be a king and what to be a man.
147
We do not content ourselves with the life we have in ourselves and in our own being; we
desire to live an imaginary life in the mind of others, and for this purpose we endeavour
to shine. We labour unceasingly to adorn and preserve this imaginary existence, and
neglect the real. And if we possess calmness, or generosity, or truthfulness, we are eager
to make it known, so as to attach these virtues to that imaginary existence. We would
rather separate them from ourselves to join them to it; and we would willingly be cowards
in order to acquire the reputation of being brave. A great proof of the nothingness of our
being, not to be satisfied with the one without the other, and to renounce the one for the
other! For he would be infamous who would not die to preserve his honour.
148
We are so presumptuous that we would wish to be known by all the world, even by people
who shall come after, when we shall be no more; and we are so vain that the esteem of five
or six neighbours delights and contents us.
149
We do not trouble ourselves about being esteemed in the towns through which we pass.
But if we are to remain a little while there, we are so concerned. How long is necessary?
A time commensurate with our vain and paltry life.
150
Vanity is so anchored in the heart of man that a soldier, a soldier's servant, a cook,
a porter brags, and wishes to have his admirers. Even philosophers wish for them. Those
who write against it want to have the glory of having written well; and those who read it
desire the glory of having read it. I who write this have perhaps this desire, and perhaps
those who will read it . . . .
151
Glory. - Admiration spoils all from infancy. Ah! How well said! Ah! How well done! How
well-behaved he is! &c.
The children of Port-Royal, who do not receive this stimulus of envy and glory, fall
into carelessness.
152
Pride. - Curiosity is only vanity. Most frequently we wish to know but to talk.
Otherwise we would not take a sea voyage in order never to talk of it, and for the sole
pleasure of seeing without hope of ever communicating it.
153
Of the desire of being esteemed by those with whom we are. - Pride takes such natural
possession of us in the midst of our woes, errors, &c. We even lose our life with joy,
provided people talk of it.
Vanity: play, hunting, visiting, false shams, a lasting name.
154
[I have no friends] to your advantage].
155
A true friend is so great an advantage, even for the greatest lords, in order that he
may speak well of them, and back them in their absence, that they should do all to have
one. But they should choose well; for, if they spend all their efforts in the interests of
fools, it will be of no use, however well these may speak of them; and these will not even
speak well of them if they find themselves on the weakest side, for they have no
influence; and thus they will speak ill of them in company.
156
Ferox gens, nullam esse vitam sine armis rati. 16 - They prefer death to
peace; others prefer death to war.
[Footnote 16: "A fierce people, who thought life was nothing without arms."
Livy.]
Every opinion may be held preferable to life, the love of which is so strong and so
natural.
157
Contradiction: contempt for our existence, to die for nothing, hatred of our existence.
158
Pursuits. - The charm of fame is so great, that we like every object to which it is
attached, even death.
159
Noble deeds are most estimable when hidden. When I see some of these in history, they
please me greatly. But after all they have not been quite hidden, since they have been
known; and though people have done what they could to hide them, the little publication of
them spoils all, for what was best in them was the wish to hide them.
160
Sneezing absorbs all the functions of the soul, as well as work does; but we do not
draw therefrom the same conclusions against the greatness of man, because it is against
his will. And although we bring it on ourselves, it is nevertheless against our will that
we sneeze. It is not in view of the act itself; it is for another end. And thus it is not
a proof of the weakness of man, and of his slavery under that action.
It is not disgraceful for man to yield to pain, and it is disgraceful to yield to
pleasure. This is not because pain comes to us from without, and we ourselves seek
pleasure; for it is possible to seek pain, and yield to it purposely, without this kind of
baseness. Whence comes it, then, that reason thinks it honourable to succumb under stress
of pain, and disgraceful to yield to the attack of pleasure? It is because pain does not
tempt and attract us. It is we ourselves who choose it voluntarily, and will it to prevail
over us. So that we are masters of the situation; and in this man yields to himself. But
in pleasure it is man who yields to pleasure. Now only mastery and sovereignty bring
glory, and only slavery brings shame.
161
Vanity. - How wonderful it is that a thing so evident as the vanity of the world is so
little known, that it is a strange and surprising thing to say that it is foolish to seek
greatness!
162
He who will know fully the vanity of man has only to consider the causes and effects of
love. The cause is I know not what (Corneille), and the effects are dreadful. This I know
not what, so small an object that we cannot recognise it, agitates a whole country,
princes, armies, the entire world.
Cleopatra's nose: had it been shorter, the whole aspect of the world would have been
altered.
163
Vanity. - The cause and the effects of love: Cleopatra.
164
He who does not see the vanity of the world is himself very vain. Indeed who do not see
it but youths who are absorbed in fame, diversion, and the thought of the future? But take
away their diversion, and you will see them dried up with weariness. They feel then their
nothingness without knowing it; for it is indeed to be unhappy to be in insufferable
sadness as soon as we are reduced to thinking of self, and have no diversion.
165
Thoughts. - In omnibus requiem quaesivi. 17 If our condition were truly
happy, we would not need diversion from thinking of it in order to make ourselves happy.
[Footnote 17: "In all things I have sought rest."]
166
Diversion. - Death is easier to bear without thinking of it, than is the thought of
death without peril.
167
The miseries of human life have established all this: as men have seen this, they have
taken up diversion.
168
Diversion. - As men are not able to fight against death, misery, ignorance, they have
taken it into their heads, in order to be happy, not to think of them at all.
169
Despite these miseries, man wishes to be happy, and only wishes to be happy, and cannot
wish not to be so. But how will he set about it? To be happy he would have to make himself
immortal; but, not being able to do so, it has occurred to him to prevent himself from
thinking of death.
170
Diversion. - If man were happy, he would be the more so, the less he was diverted, like
the Saints and God. - Yes; but is it not to be happy to have a faculty of being amused by
diversion? - No; for that comes from elsewhere and from without, and thus is dependent,
and therefore subject to be disturbed by a thousand accidents, which bring inevitable
griefs.
171
Misery. - The only thing which consoles us for our miseries is diversion, and yet this
is the greatest of our miseries. For it is this which principally hinders us from
reflecting upon ourselves, and which makes us insensibly ruin ourselves. Without this we
should be in a state of weariness, and this weariness would spur us to seek a more solid
means of escaping from it. But diversion amuses us, and leads us unconsciously to death.
172
We do not rest satisfied with the present. We anticipate the future as too slow in
coming, as if in order to hasten its course; or we recall the past, to stop its too rapid
flight. So imprudent are we that we wander in the times which are not ours, and do not
think of the only one which belongs to us; and so idle are we that we dream of those times
which are no more, and thoughtlessly overlook that which alone exists. For the present is
generally painful to us. We conceal it from out sight, because it troubles us; and if it
be delightful to us, we regret to see it pass away. We try to sustain it by the future,
and think of arranging matters which are not in our power, for a time which we have no
certainty of reaching.
Let each one examine his thoughts, and he will find them all occupied with the past and
the future. We scarcely ever think of the present; and if we think of it, it is only to
take light from it to arrange the future. The present is never our end. The past and the
present are our means; the future alone is our end. So we never live, but we hope to live;
and, as we are always preparing to be happy, it is inevitable we should never be so.
173
They say that eclipses foretoken misfortune, because misfortunes are common, so that,
as evil happens so often, they often foretell it; whereas if they said that they predict
good fortune, they would often be wrong. They attribute good fortune only to rare
conjunctions of the heavens; so they seldom fail in prediction.
174
Misery. - Solomon and Job have best known and best spoken of the misery of man; the
former, the most fortunate, and the latter the most unfortunate of men; the former knowing
the vanity of pleasures from experience, the latter the reality of evils.
175
We know ourselves so little, that many think they are about to die when they are well,
and many think they are well when they are near death, unconscious of approaching fever,
or of the abscess ready to form itself.
176
Cromwell was about to ravage all Christendom; the royal family was undone, and his own
for ever established, save form a little grain of sand which formed in his ureter. Rome
herself was trembling under him; but this small piece of gravel having formed there, he is
dead, his family cast down, all is peaceful, and the king is restored.
177
[Three hosts.] Would he who had possessed the friendship of the King of England, the
King of Poland, and the Queen of Sweden, have believed he would lack a refuge and shelter
in the world?
178
Macrobius: on the innocents slain by Herod.
179
When Augustus learnt that Herod's own son was amongst the infants under two years of
age, whom he had caused to be slain, he said that it was better to be Herod's pig than his
son. - Macrobius, Saturnalia, book ii. chap. 4.
180
The great and the humble have the same misfortunes, the same griefs, the same passions;
but the one is at the top of the wheel, and the other near the centre, and so less
disturbed by the same revolutions.
181
We are so unfortunate that we can only take pleasure in a thing on condition of being
annoyed if it turn out ill, as a thousand things can do, and do every hour. He who should
find the secret of rejoicing in the good, without troubling himself with its contrary
evil, would have hit the mark. It is perpetual motion.
182
Those who have always good hope in the midst of misfortunes, and who are delighted with
good luck, are suspected of being very pleased with the ill success of the affair, if they
are not equally distressed by bad luck; and they are overjoyed to find these pretexts of
hope, in order to show that they are concerned, and to conceal by the joy which they feign
to feel that which they have at seeing the failure of the matter.
183
We run carelessly to the precipice, after we have put something before us to prevent us
seeing it.
Section III
Part I
Of the Necessity of the Wager
184
A letter to incite to the search after God.
And then to make people seek Him among the philosophers, sceptics, and dogmatists, who
disquiet him who inquires of them.
185
The conduct of God, who disposes all things kindly, is to put religion into the mind by
reason, and into the heart by grace. But to will to put it into the mind and heart by
force and threats is not to put religion there, but terror, terorrem potius quam
religionem. 1
[Footnote 1: "Terror rather than religion."]
186
Nisi terrerentur et non docerentur, improba quasi dominatio videretur (Aug. Ep. 48 or
49). 2 Contra mendacium ad Consentium. 3
[Footnote 2: "If they were not terrified and were instructed, it would seem like
an unjust tyranny."]
[Footnote 3: "To meet a lie, appeal to the Council."]
187
Order. - Men despise religion; they hate it, and fear it is true. To remedy this, we
must begin by showing that religion is not contrary to reason; that it is venerable, to
inspire respect for it; then we must make it lovable, to make good men hope it is true;
finally, we must prove it is true.
Venerable, because it has perfect knowledge of man: lovable, because it promises the
true good.
188
In every dialogue and discourse, we must be able to say to those who take offence,
"Of what do you complain?"
189
To begin by pitying unbelievers; they are wretched enough by their condition. We ought
only to revile them where it is beneficial; but this does them harm.
190
To pity atheists who seek, for are they not unhappy enough? To inveigh against those
who make a boast of it.
191
And will this one scoff at the other? Who ought to scoff? And yet, the latter does not
scoff at the other, but pities him.
192
To reproach Miton with not being troubled, since God will reproach him.
193
Quid fiet hominibus qui minima contemnunt, majora non credunt. 4
[Footnote 4: "What will happen to men who despise the smallest things, and do not
believe the greater."]
194
. . . Let them at least learn what is the religion they attack, before attacking it. If
this religion boasted of having a clear view of God, and of possessing it open and
unveiled, it would be attacking it to say that we see nothing in the world which shows it
with this clearness. But since, on the contrary, it says that men are in darkness and
estranged from God, that He has hidden Himself from their knowledge, that this is in fact
the name which He gives Himself in the Scriptures, Deus absconditus; 5 and
finally, if it endeavours equally to establish these two things: that God has set up in
the Church visible signs to make Himself known to those who should seek Him sincerely, and
that He has nevertheless so disguised them that He will only be perceived by those who
seek Him with all their heart; what advantage can they obtain, when, in the negligence
with which they make profession of being in search of the truth, they cry out that nothing
reveals it to them; and since that darkness in which they are, and with which they upbraid
the Church, establishes only one of the things which she affirms, without touching the
other, and, very far from destroying, proves her doctrine?
[Footnote 5: "A hidden God." - Isaiah, xlv. 15.]
In order to attack it, they should have protested that they had made every effort to
seek Him everywhere, and even in that which the Church proposes for their instruction, but
without satisfaction. If they talked in this manner, they would in truth be attacking one
of her pretensions. But I hope here to show that no reasonable person can speak thus, and
I venture even to say that no one has ever done so. We know well enough how those who are
of this mind behave. They believe they have made great efforts for their instruction, when
they have spent a few hours in reading some book of Scripture, and have questioned some
priest on the truths of the faith. After that, they boast of having made vain search in
books and among men. But, verily, I will tell them what I have often said, that this
negligence is insufferable. We are not here concerned with the trifling interest of some
stranger, that we should treat it in this fashion; the matter concerns ourselves and our
all.
The immortality of the soul is a matter which is of so great consequence to us, and
which touches us so profoundly, that we must have lost all feeling to be indifferent as to
knowing what it is. All our actions and thoughts must take such different courses,
according as there are or are not eternal joys to hope for, that it is impossible to take
one step with sense and judgment, unless we regulate our course by our view of this point
which ought to be our ultimate end.
Thus our first interest and our first duty is to enlighten ourselves on this subject,
whereon depends all our conduct. Therefore among those who do not believe, I make a vast
difference between those who strive with all their power to inform themselves, and those
who live without troubling or thinking about it.
I can have only compassion for those who sincerely bewail their doubt, who regard it as
the greatest of misfortunes, and who, sparing no effort to escape it, make of this inquiry
their principal and most serious occupation.
But as for those who pass their life without thinking of this ultimate end of life, and
who, for this sole reason that they do not find within themselves the lights which
convince them of it, neglect to seek them elsewhere, and to examine thoroughly whether
this opinion is one of those which people receive with credulous simplicity, or one of
those which, although obscure in themselves, have nevertheless a solid and immovable
foundation, I look upon them in a manner quite different.
This carelessness in a matter which concerns themselves, their eternity, their all,
moves me more to anger than pity; it astonishes and shocks me; it is to me monstrous. I do
not say this out of the pious zeal of a spiritual devotion. I expect, on the contrary,
that we ought to have this feeling from principles of human interest and self-love; for
this we need oily see what the least enlightened persons see.
We do not require great education of the mind to understand that here is no real and
lasting satisfaction; that our pleasures are only vanity; that our evils are infinite;
and, lastly, that death, which threatens us every moment, must infallibly place us within
a few years under the dreadful necessity of being for ever either annihilated or unhappy.
There is nothing more real than this, nothing more terrible. Be as heroic as we like,
that is the end which awaits the noblest life in the world. Let us reflect on this, and
then say whether it is not beyond doubt that there is no good in this life but in the hope
of another; that we are happy only in proportion as we draw near it; and that, as there
are no more woes for those who have complete assurance of eternity, so there is no more
happiness for those who have no insight into it.
Surely then it is a great evil thus to be in doubt, but it is at least an indispensable
duty to seek when we are in such doubt; and thus the doubter who does not seek is
altogether completely unhappy and completely wrong. And if besides this he is easy and
content, profess to be so, and indeed boasts of it; if it is this state itself which is
the subject of his joy and vanity, I have no words to describe so silly a creature.
How can people hold these opinions? What joy can we find in the expectation of nothing
but hopeless misery? What reason for boasting that we are in impenetrable darkness? And
how can it happen that the following argument occurs to a reasonable man?
"I know not who put me into the world, nor what the world is, not what I myself
am. I am in terrible ignorance of everything. I know not what my body is, nor my senses,
nor my soul, nor even that part of me which thinks what I say, which reflects on all and
on itself, and knows itself no more than the rest. I see those frightful spaces of the
universe which surround me, and I find myself tied to one corner of this vast expanse,
without knowing why I am put in this place rather than in another, nor why the short time
which is given me to live is assigned to me at this point rather than at another of the
whole eternity which was before me or which shall come after me. I see nothing but
infinites on all sides, which surround me as an atom, and as a shadow which endures only
for an instant and returns no more. All I know is that I must soon die, but what I know
least is this very death which I cannot escape.
"As I know not whence I come, so I know not whither I go. I know only that, in
leaving this world, I fall for ever either into annihilation or into the hands of an angry
God, without knowing to which of these two states I shall be for ever assigned. Such is my
state, full of weakness and uncertainty. And from all this I conclude that I ought to
spend all the days of my life without caring to inquire into what must happen to me.
Perhaps I might find some solution to my doubts, but I will not take the trouble, nor take
a step to seek in; and after treating with scorn those who are concerned with this care, I
will gn without foresight and without fear to try the great event, and let myself be led
carelessly to death, uncertain of the eternity of my future state."
Who would desire to have for a friend a man who talks in this fashion? Who would choose
him out from others to tell him of his affairs? Who would have recourse to him in
affliction? And indeed to what use in life could one put him.
In truth, it is the glory of religion to have for enemies men so unreasonable: and
their opposition to it is so little dangerous that it serves on the contrary to establish
its truths. For the Christion faith goes mainly to establish these two facts, the
corruption of nature, and redemption by Jesus Christ. Now I contend that if these men do
not serve to prove the truth of the redemption by the holiness of their behaviour, they at
least serve admirably to show the corruption of nature by sentiments so unnatural.
Nothing is so important to man as his own state, nothing is so formidable to him as
eternity; and thus it is not natural that there should be men indifferent to the loss of
their existence, and to the perils of everlasting suffering. They are quite different with
regard to all other things. They are afraid of mere trifles; they foresee them; they feel
them. And this same man who spends so many days and nights in rage and despair for the
loss of office, or for some imaginary insult to his honour, is the very one who knows
without anxiety and without emotion that he will lose all by death. It is a monstrous
thing to see in the same heart and at the same time this sensibility to trifles and this
strange insensibility to the greatest objects. It is an incomprehensible enchantment, and
a supernatural slumber, which indicates as its cause an all-powerful force.
There must be a strange confusion in the nature of man, that he should boast of being
in that state in which it seems incredible that a single individual should be. However,
experience has shown me so great a number of such persons that the fact would be
surprising, if we did not know that the greater part of those who trouble themselves about
the matter are disingenuous, and not in fact what they say. They are people who have heard
it said that it is the fashion to be thus daring. It is what they call shaking off the
yoke, and they try to imitate this. But it would not be difficult to make them understand
how greatly they deceive themselves in thus seeking esteem. This is not the way to gain
it, even I say among those men of the world who take a healthy view of things, and who
know that the only way to succeed in this life is to make ourselves appear honourable,
faithful, judicious, and capable of useful service to a friend; because naturally men love
only what may be useful to them. Now, what do we gain by hearing it said of a man that he
has now thrown off the joke, that he does not believe there is a God who watches our
actions, that he considers himself the sole master of his conduct, and that he thinks he
is accountable for it only to himself? Does he think that he has thus brought us to have
henceforth complete confidence in him, and to look to him for consolation, advice, and
help in every need of life? Do they profess to have delighted us by telling us that they
hold our soul to be only a little wind and smoke, especially by telling us this in a
haughty and self-satisfied tone of voice? Is this a thing to say gaily? Is it not, on the
contrary, a thing to say sadly, as the saddest thing in the world?
If they thought of it seriously, they would see that this is so bad a mistake, so
contrary to good sense, so opposed to decency, and so removed in every respect from that
good breeding which they seek, that they would be more likely to correct than to pervert
those who had an inclination to follow them. And indeed, make them give an account of
their opinions, and of the reasons which they have for doubting religion, and they will
say to you things so feeble and so petty, that they will persuade you of the contrary. The
following is what a person one day said to such an one very appositely, "If you
continue to talk in this manner, you will really make me religious." And he was
right, for who would not have a horror of holding opinions in which he would have such
contemptible persons as companions!
Thus those who only feign these opinions would be very unhappy, if they restrained
their natural feelings in order to make themselves the most conceited of men. If, at the
bottom of their heart, they are troubled at not having more light, let them not disguise
the fact:; this avowal will not be shameful. The only shame is to have none. Nothing
reveals more an extreme weakness of mind than not to know the misery of a godless man.
Nothing is more indicative of a bad disposition of heart than not to desire the truth of
eternal promises. Nothing is more dastardly than to act the bravado before God. Let them
then leave these impieties to those who are sufficiently ill-bred to be really capable of
them. Let them at least be honest men, if they cannot be Christians. Finally, let them
recognise that there are two kinds of people one can call reasonable; those who serve God
with all their heart because they know Him, and those who seek Him with all their heart
because they do not know Him.
But as for those who live without knowing Him and without seeking Him, they judge
themselves so little worthy of their own care, that they are not worthy of the care of
others; and it needs all the charity of the religion which they despise, not to despise
them even to the point of leaving them to their folly. But because this religion obliges
us always to regard them, so long as they are in this life, as capable of the grace which
can enlighten them, and to believe that they may, in a little time, be more replenished
with faith than we are, and that, on the other hand, we may fall into the blindness
wherein they are, we must do for them what we would they should do for us if we were in
their place, and call upon them to have pity upon themselves, and to take at least some
steps in the endeavour to find light. Let them give to reading this some of the hours
which they otherwise employ so uselessly; whatever aversion they may bring to the task,
they will perhaps gain something, and at least will not lose much. But as for those who
bring to the task perfect sincerity and a real desire to meet with truth, those I hope
will be satisfied and convinced of the proofs of a religion so divine, which I have here
collected and in which I have followed somewhat after this order. . .
195
Before entering into the proofs of the Christian religion, I find it necessary to point
out the sinfulness of those men who live in indifference to the search for truth in a
matter which is so important to them, and which touches them so nearly.
Of all their errors, this doubtless is the one which most convicts them of foolishness
and blindness, and in which it is easiest to confound them by the first glimmerings of
common sense, and by natural feelings.
For it is not to be doubted that the duration of this life is but a moment; that the
state of death is eternal, whatever may be its nature; and that thus all our actions and
thoughts must take such different directions according to the state of that eternity, that
it is impossible to take one step with sense and judgment, unless we regulate our course
by the truth of that point which ought to be our ultimate end.
There is nothing clearer than this; and thus, according to the principles of reason,
the conduct of men is wholly unreasonable, if they do not take another course.
On this point therefore we condemn those who live without thought of the ultimate end
of life, who let themselves be guided by their own inclinations and their own pleasures
without reflection and without concern, and, as if they could annihilate eternity by
turning away their thought from it, think only of making themselves happy for the moment.
Yet this eternity exists, and death, which must open into it, and threatens them every
hour, must in a little time infallibly put them under the dreadful necessity of being
either annihilated or unhappy for ever, without knowing which of these eternities is for
ever prepared for them.
This is a doubt of terrible consequence. They are in peril of eternal woe; and
thereupon, as if the matter were not worth the trouble, they neglect to inquire whether
this is one of those opinions which people receive with too credulous a facility, or one
of those which, obscure in themselves, have a very firm, though hidden, foundation. Thus
they know not whether there be truth or falsity in the matter, nor whether there be
strength or weakness in the proofs. They have them before their eyes; they refuse to look
at them; and in that ignorance they choose all that is necessary to fall into this
misfortune if it exist, to await death to make trial of it, yet to be very content in this
state, to make profession of it and indeed to boast of it. Can we think seriously on the
importance of this subject without being horrified at conduct so extravagant?
This resting in ignorance is a monstrous thing, and they who pass their life in it must
be made to feel its extravagance and stupidity, by having it shown to them, so that they
may be confounded by the sight of their folly. For this is how men reason, when they
choose to live in such ignorance of what they are, and without seeking enlightenment.
"I know not," they say. . .
196
Men lack heart; they would not make a friend of it.
197
To be insensible to the extent of despising interesting things, and to become
insensible to the point which interests us most.
198
The sensibility of man to trifles, and his insensibility to great things, indicates a
strange inversion.
199
Let us imagine a number of men in chains, and all condemned to death, where some are
killed each day in the sight of the others, and those who remain see their own fate in
that of their fellows, and wait their turn, looking at each other sorrowfully and without
hope. It is an image of the condition of men.
200
A man in a dungeon, ignorant whether his sentence be pronounced, and having only one
hour to learn it, but this hour enough, if he know that it is, pronounced, to obtain its
repeal, would act unnaturally in spending that hour not in ascertaining his sentence, but
in playing piquet. So it is against nature that man, &c. It is making heavy the hand
of God.
Thus not only the zeal of those who seek Him proves God, but also the blindness of
those who seek Him not.
201
All the objections of this one and that one only go against themselves, and not against
religion. All that infidels say . . .
202
[From those who are in despair at being without faith, we see that God does not
enlighten them; but as to the rest, we see there is a God who makes them blind.]
Part II
203
Fascinatio nugacitatis. 6 - That passion may not harm us, let us act as if
we had only eight hours to live.
[Footnote 6: "The bewitching of naughtiness." - Wisdom, iv. 12.]
204
If we ought to devote eight hours of life, we ought to devote a hundred years.
205
When I consider the short duration of my life, swallowed up in the eternity before and
after, the little space which I fill, and even can see, engulfed in the infinite immensity
of spaces of which I am ignorant, and which know me not, I am frightened, and am
astonished at being here rather than there; for there is no reason why here rather than
there, why now rather than then. Who has put me here? By whose order and direction have
this place and time been alloted to me? Memoria hospitis unius diei praetereuntis. 7
[Footnote 7: "The remembrance of a guest that tarrieth but a day." - Wisdom,
v. 14.]
206
The eternal silence of these infinite spaces frightens me.
207
How many kingdoms know us not?
208
Why is my knowledge limited? Why my stature? Why my life to one hundred years rather
than to a thousand? What reason has nature had for giving me such, and for choosing this
number rather than another in the infinity of those from which there is no more reason to
choose one than another, trying nothing else?
209
Art thou less a slave by being loved and favoured by thy master? Thou art indeed well
off, slave. Thy master favours thee; he will soon beat thee.
210
The last act is tragic, however happy all the rest of the play is; at the last a little
earth is thrown upon our head, and that is the end for ever.
211
We are fools to depend upon the society of our fellowmen. Wretched as we are, powerless
as we are, they will not aid us; we shall die alone. We should therefore act as if we were
alone, and in that case should we build fine houses, &c.? We should seek the truth
without hesitation; and, if we refuse it, we show that we value the esteem of men more
than the search for truth.
212
Instability. - It is a horrible thing to feel all that we possess slipping away.
213
Between us and heaven or hell there is only life, which is the frailest thing in the
world.
214
Injustice. - That presumption should be joined to meanness is extreme injustice.
215
To fear death without danger, and not in danger, for one must be a man.
216
Sudden death alone is feared; hence confessors stay with lords.
217
An heir finds the title-deeds of his house. Will he say, "Perhaps they are
forged?" and neglect to examine them?
218
Dungeon. - I approve of not examining the opinion of Copernicus; but this . . . ! It
concerns all our life to know whether the soul be mortal or immortal.
219
It is certain that the mortality or immortality of the soul must make an entire
difference to morality. And yet philosophers have constructed their ethics independently
of this: they discuss to pass an hour.
Plato, to incline to Christianity.
220
The fallacy of philosophers who have not discussed the immortality of the soul. The
fallacy of their dilemma in Montaigne.
221
Atheists ought to say what is perfectly evident; now it is not perfectly evident that
the soul is material.
222
Atheists. - What reason have they for saying that we cannot rise from the dead? What is
more difficult, to be born or to rise again; that what has never been should be, or that
what has been should be again? Is it more difficult to come into existence than to return
to it? Habit makes the one appear easy to us; want of habit makes the other impossible. A
popular way of thinking!
Why cannot a virgin bear a child? Does a hen not lay eggs without a cock? What
distinguishes these outwardly from others? And who has told us that the hen may not form
the germ as well as the cock?
223
What have they to say against the resurrection, and against the child-bearing of the
Virgin? Which is the more difficult, to produce a man or an animal, or to reproduce it?
And if they had never seen any species of animals, could they have conjectured whether
they were produced without connection with each other?
224
How I hate these follies of not believing in the Eucharist, &c.! If the Gospel be
true, if Jesus Christ be God, what difficulty is there?
225
Atheism shows strength of mind, but only to a certain degree.
226
Infidels, who profess to follow reason, ought to be exceedingly strong in reason. What
say they then? "Do we not see," say they, "that the brutes live and die
like men, and Turks like Christians? They have their ceremonies, their prophets, their
doctors, their saints, their monks, like us," &c. (Is this contrary to Scripture?
Does it not say all this?)
If your care but little to know the truth, here is enough of it to leave you in repose.
But if you desire with all your heart to know it, it is not enough; look at it in detail.
This would be sufficient for a question in philosophy; but not here, where it concerns
your all. And yet, after a trifling reflection of this kind, we go to amuse ourselves,
&c. Let us inquire of this same religion whether it does not give a reason for this
obscurity; perhaps it will teach it to us.
227
Order by dialogues. - What ought I to do? I see only darkness everywhere. Shall I
believe I am nothing? Shall I believe I am God?
"All things change and succeed each other." You are mistaken; there is . . .
228
Objection of atheists: "But we have no light."
229
This is what I see and what troubles me. I look on all sides, and I see only darkness
everywhere. Nature presents to me nothing which is not matter of doubt and concern. If I
saw nothing there which revealed a Divinity, I would come to a negative conclusion; if I
saw everywhere the signs of a Creator, I would remain peacefully in faith. But, seeing too
much to deny and too little to be sure, I am in a state to be pitied; wherefore I have a
hundred times wished that if a God maintains nature, she should testify to Him
unequivocally, and that, if the signs she gives are deceptive, she should suppress them
altogether; that she should say everything or nothing, that I might see which cause I
ought to follow. Whereas in my present state, ignorant of what I am or of what I ought to
do, I know neither my condition nor my duty. My heart inclines wholly to know, where is
the true good, in order to follow it; nothing would be too dear to me for eternity.
I envy those whom I see living in the faith with such carelessness, and who make such a
bad use of a gift of which it seems to me I would make such a different use.
230
It is incomprehensible that God should exist, and it is incomprehensible that He should
not exist, that the soul should be joined to the body, and that we should have no soul;
that the world should be created, and that it should not be created, &c.; that
original sin should be, and that it should not be.
231
Do you believe it to be impossible that God is infinite, without parts? Yes. I wish
therefore to show you an infinite and indivisible thing. It is a point moving everywhere
with an infinite velocity; for it is one in all places, and is all totality in every
place.
Let this effect of nature, which previously seemed to you impossible, make you know
that there may be others of which you are still ignorant. Do not draw this conclusion from
your experiment, that there remains nothing for you to know; but rather that there remains
an infinity for you to know.
232
Infinite movement, the point which fills everything, the moment of rest; infinite
without quantity, indivisible and infinite.
233
Infinite-nothing. - Our soul is cast into a body, where it finds number, time,
dimension. Thereupon it reasons, and calls this nature, necessity, and can believe nothing
else.
Unity joined to infinity adds nothing to it, no more than one foot to an infinite
measure. The finite is annihilated in the presence of the infinite, and becomes a pure
nothing. So our spirit before God, so our justice before divine justice. There is not so
great a disproportion between our justice and that of God, as between unity and infinity.
The justice of God must be vast like His compassion. Now justice to the outcast is less
vast, and ought less to offend our feelings than mercy towards the elect.
We know that there is an infinite, and are ignorant of its nature. As we know it to be
false that numbers are finite, it is therefore true that there is an infinity in number.
But we do not know what it is. It is false that it is even, it is false that it is odd;
for the addition of a unit can make no change in its nature. Yet it is a number, and every
number is odd or even (this is certainly true of every finite number). So we may well know
that there is a God without knowing what He is. Is there not one substantial truth, seeing
there are so many things which are not the truth itself?
We know then the existence and nature of the finite, because we also are finite and
have extension. We know the existence of the infinite, and are ignorant of its nature,
because it has extension like us, but not limits like us. But we know neither the
existence nor the nature of God, because He has neither extension nor limits.
But by faith we know His existence; in glory we shall know His nature. Now, I have
already shown that we may well know the existence of a thing, without knowing its nature.
Let us now speak according to natural lights.
If there is a God, He is infinitely incomprehensible, since, having neither parts nor
limits, He has no affinity to us. We are then incapable of knowing either what He is or if
He is. This being so, who will dare to undertake the decision of the question? Not we, who
have no affinity to Him.
Who then will blame Christians for not being able to give a reason for their belief,
since they profess a religion for which they cannot give a reason? They declare, in
expounding it to the world, that it is a foolishness, stultitiam; and then you complain
that they do not prove it! If they proved it, they would not keep their word; it is in
lacking proofs, that they are not lacking in sense. "Yes, but although this excuses
those who offer it as such, and take away from them the blame of putting it forward
without reason, it does not excuse those who receive it." Let us then examine this
point, and say, "God is, or He is not." But to which side shall we incline?
Reason can decide nothing here. There is an infinite chaos which separates us. A game is
being played at the extremity of this infinite distance where heads or tails will turn up.
What will you wager? According to reason, you can do neither the one thing nor the other;
according to reason, you can defend neither of the propositions.
Do not then reprove for error those who have made a choice; for you know nothing about
it. "No, but I blame them for having made, not this choice, but a choice; for again
both he who chooses heads and he who chooses tails are equally at fault, they are both in
the wrong. The true course is not to wager at all."
- Yes; but you must wager. It is not optional. You are embarked. Which will you choose
then? Let us see. Since you must choose, let us see which interests you least. You have
two things to lose, the true and the good; and two things to stake, your reason and your
will, your knowledge and your happiness; and your nature has two things to shun, error and
misery. Your reason is no more shocked in choosing one rather than the other, since you
must of necessity choose. This is one point settled. But your happiness? Let us weigh the
gain and the loss in wagering that God is. Let us estimate these two chances. If you gain,
you gain all; if you lose, you lose nothing. Wager then without hesitation that He is. -
"That is very fine. Yes, I must wager; but I may perhaps wager too much." - Let
us see. Since there is an equal risk of gain and of loss, if you had only to gain two
lives, instead of one, you might still wager. But if there were three lives to gain, you
would have to play (since you are under the necessity of playing), and you would be
imprudent, when you are forced to play, not to chance your life to gain three at a game
where there is an equal risk of loss and gain. But there is an eternity of life and
happiness. And this being so, if there were an infinity of chances, of which one only
would be for you, you would still be right in wagering one to win two, and you would act
stupidly, being obliged to play, by refusing to stake one life against three at a game in
which out of an infinitely of chances there is one for you, if there were an infinity of
an infinity happy life to gain. But there is here an infinity of an infinitely happy life
to gain, a chance of gain against a finite number of chances of loss, and what you stake
is finite. It is all divided; wherever the infinite is and there is not an infinity of
chances of loss against that of gain, there is no time to hesitate, you must give all. And
thus, when one is forced to play, he must renounce reason to preserve his life, rather
than risk it for infinite gain, as likely to happen as the loss of nothingness.
For it is no use to say it is uncertain if we will gain, and it is certain that we
risk, and that the infinite distance between the certainty of what is staked and the
uncertainty of what will be gained, equals the finite good which is certainly staked
against the uncertain infinite. It is not so, as every player stakes a certainty to gain
an uncertainty, and yet he stakes a finite certainty to gain a finite uncertainty, without
transgressing against reason. There is not an infinite distance between the certainty
staked and the uncertainty of the gain; that is untrue. In truth, there is an infinity
between the certainty of gain and the certainty of loss. But the uncertainty of the gain
is proportioned to the certainty of the stake according to the proportion of the chances
of gain and loss. Hence it comes that, if there are as many risks on one side as on the
other, the course is to play even; and then the certainty of the stake is equal to the
uncertainty of the gain, so far is it from fact that there is an infinite distance between
them. And so our proposition is of infinite force, when there is the finite to stake in a
game where there are equal risks of gain and of loss, and the infinite to gain. This is
demonstrable; and if men are capable of any truths, this is one.
"I confess it, I admit it. But still is there no means of seeing the faces of the
cards?" - Yes, Scripture and the rest, &c. - "Yes, but I have my hands tied
and my mouth closed; I am forced to wager, and am not free. I am not released, and am so
made that I cannot believe. What then would you have me do?"
True. But at least learn your inability to believe, since reason brings you to this,
and yet you cannot believe. Endeavour then to convince yourself, not by increase of proofs
of God, but by the abatement of your passions. You would like to attain faith, and do not
know the way; you would like to cure yourself of unbelief, and ask the remedy for it.
Learn of those who have been bound like you, and who now stake all their possessions.
These are people who know the way which you would follow, and who are cured of an ill of
which you would be cured. Follow the way by which they began; by acting as if they
believe, taking the holy water, having masses said, &c. Even this will naturally make
you believe, and deaden your acuteness. - "But this is what I am afraid of." -
And why? What have you to lose?
But to show you that this leads you there, it is this which will lessen the passions,
which are your stumbling-blocks.
The end of this discourse. - Now what harm will befall you in taking this side? You
will be faithful, honest, humble, grateful, generous, a sincere friend, truthful.
Certainly you will not have those poisonous pleasures, glory and luxury; but will you not
have others? I will tell you that you will thereby gain in this life, and that, at each
step you take on this road, you will see so great certainty of gain, so much nothingness
in what you risk, that you will at last recognize that you have wagered for something
certain and infinite, for which you have given nothing.
"Ah! This discourse transports me, charms me," &c.
If this discourse pleases you and seems impressive, know that it is made by a man who
has knelt, both before and after it, in prayer to that Being, infinite and without parts,
before whom he lays all he has, for you also to lay before Him all you have for your own
good and for His glory, that so strength may be given to lowliness.
234
If we must not act save on a certainty, we ought not to act on religion, for it is not
certain. But how many things we do on an uncertainty, sea voyages, battles! I say then we
must do nothing at all, for nothing is certain, and that there is more certainty in
religion than there is as to whether we may see to-morrow; for it is not certain that we
may see to-morrow, and it is certainly possible that we may not see it. We cannot say as
much about religion. It is not certain that it is; but who will venture to say that it is
certainly possible that it is not; Now when we work for to-morrow, and so on an
uncertainty, we act reasonably; for we ought to work for an uncertainty according to the
doctrine of chance which was demonstrated above.
St. Augustine has seen that we work for an uncertainty, on sea, in battle, &c. But
he has not seen the doctrine of chance which proves that we should do so. Montaigne has
seen that we are shocked at a fool, and that habit is all-powerful; but he has not seen
the reason of this effect.
All these persons have seen the effects, but they have not seen the causes. They are,
in comparison with those who have discovered the causes, as those who have only eyes are
in comparison with those who have intellect. For the effects are perceptible by sense, and
the causes are visible only to the intellect. And although these effects are seen by the
mind, this mind is, in comparison with the mind which sees the causes, as the bodily
senses are in comparison with the intellect.
235
Rem viderunt, causam non viderunt. 8
[Footnote 8: "They saw the thing, not the cause."]
236
According to the doctrine of chance, you ought to put yourself to the trouble of
searching for the truth; for if you die without worshipping the True Cause, you are lost.
- "But," say you, "if He had wished me to worship Him, He would have left
me signs of His will." - He has done so; but you neglect them. Seek them therefore;
it is well worth it.
237
Chances. - We must live differently in the world, according to these different
assumptions: - (1) that we could always remain in it; (2) that it is certain that we shall
not remain here long, and uncertain if we shall remain here one hour. This last assumption
is our condition.
238
What do you then promise me, in addition to certain troubles, but ten years of
self-love (for ten years is the chance), to try hard to please without success?
239
Objection. - Those who hope for salvation are so far happy; but they have as a
counterpoise the fear of hell.
Reply. - Who has most reason to fear hell: he who is in ignorance whether there is a
hell, and who is certain of damnation if there is; or he who certainly believes there is a
hell, and hopes to be saved if there is?
240
"I would soon have renounced pleasure," say they, "had I faith."
For my part I tell you, "You would soon have faith, if you renounced pleasure."
Now, it is for you to begin. If I could, I would give you faith. I cannot do so, nor
therefore test the truth of what you say. But you can well renounce pleasure, and test
whether what I say is true.
241
Order. - I would have far more fear of being mistaken, and of finding that the
Christian religion was true, than of not being mistaken in believing it true.
Section IV
Section I
Of The Means Of Belief
242
Preface to the second part. - To speak of those who have treated of this matter.
I admire the boldness with which these persons undertake to speak of God. In addressing
their argument to infidels, their first chapter is to prove Divinity from the works of
nature. I should not be astonished at their enterprise, if they were addressing their
argument to the faithful; for it is certain that those who have the living faith in their
heart see at once that all existence is none other than the work of the God whom they
adore. But for those in whom this light is extinguished, and in whom we purpose to
rekindle it, persons destitute of faith and grace, who, seeking with all their light
whatever they see in nature that can bring them to this knowledge, find only obscurity and
darkness; to tell them that they have only to look at the smallest things which surround
them, and they will see God openly, to give them, as a complete proof of this great and
important matter, the course of the moon and planets, and to claim to have concluded the
proof with such an argument, is to give them ground for believing that the proofs of our
religion are very weak. And I see by reason and experience that nothing is more calculated
to arouse their contempt.
It is not after this manner that Scripture speaks, which has a better knowledge of the
things that are of God. It says, on the contrary, that God is a hidden God, and that,
since the corruption of nature, He has left men in a darkness from which they can escape
only through Jesus Christ, without whom all communion with God is cut off. Nemo novit
Patrem, nisi Filius, et cui voluerit Filius revelare. 1
[Footnote 1: Matthew, xi. 27.]
This is what Scripture points out to us, when it says in so many places that those who
seek God find Him. It is not of that light, "like the noonday sun," that this is
said. We do not say that those who seek the noonday sun, or water in the sea, shall find
them; and hence the evidence of God must not be of this nature. So it tells us elsewhere:
Vere tu es Deus absconditus. 2
[Footnote 2: Isaiah, xlv. 15.]
243
It is an astounding fact that no canonical writer has ever made use of nature to prove
God. They all strive to make us believe in Him. David, Solomon, &c., have never said,
"There is no void, therefore there is a God." They must have had more knowledge
than the most learned people who came after them, and who have all made use of this
argument. This is worthy of attention.
244
"Why! Do you not say yourself that the heavens and birds prove God?" No.
"And does your religion not say so?" No. For although it is true in a sense for
some souls to whom God gives this light, yet it is false with respect to the majority of
men.
245
There are three sources of belief: reason, custom, inspiration. The Christian religion,
which alone has reason, does not acknowledge as her true children those who believe
without inspiration. It is not that she excludes reason and custom. On the contrary, the
mind must be opened to proofs, must be confirmed by custom, and offer itself in humbleness
to inspirations, which alone can produce a true and saving effect. Ne evacuetur crux
Christi. 3
[Footnote 3: I Corinthians, i. 17.]
246
Order. - After the letter "that we ought to seek God," to write the letter
"on removing obstacles"; which is the discourse on "the machine," on
preparing the machine, on seeking by reason.
247
Order. - A letter of exhortation to a friend to induce him to seek. And he will reply,
"But what is the use of seeking? Nothing is seen." Then to reply to him,
"Do not despair." And he will answer that he would be glad to find some light,
but that, according to this very religion, if he believed in it, it will be of no use to
him, and that therefore he prefers not to seek. And to answer to that: The machine.
248
A letter which indicates the use of proofs by the machine. - Faith is different from
proof; the one is human, the other is a gift of God. Justus ex fide vivit. 4 It
is this faith that God Himself puts into the heart, of which the proof is often the
instrument, fides ex auditu; 5 but this faith is in the heart, and makes us not
say scio, 6 but credo. 7
[Footnote 4: Romans, i. 17.]
[Footnote 5: Romans, x. 17.]
[Footnote 6: "I know."]
"Why! Do you not say yourself that the heavens and birds prove God?" No.
"And does your religion not say so?" No. For although it is true in a sense for
some souls to whom God gives this light, yet it is false with respect to the majority of
men.
245
There are three sources of belief: reason, custom, inspiration. The Christian religion,
which alone has reason, does not acknowledge as her true children those who believe
without inspiration. It is not that she excludes reason and custom. On the contrary, the
mind must be opened to proofs, must be confirmed by custom, and offer itself in humbleness
to inspirations, which alone can produce a true and saving effect. Ne evacuetur crux
Christi. 3
[Footnote 3: I Corinthians, i. 17.]
246
Order. - After the letter "that we ought to seek God," to write the letter
"on removing obstacles"; which is the discourse on "the machine," on
preparing the machine, on seeking by reason.
247
Order. - A letter of exhortation to a friend to induce him to seek. And he will reply,
"But what is the use of seeking? Nothing is seen." Then to reply to him,
"Do not despair." And he will answer that he would be glad to find some light,
but that, according to this very religion, if he believed in it, it will be of no use to
him, and that therefore he prefers not to seek. And to answer to that: The machine.
248
A letter which indicates the use of proofs by the machine. - Faith is different from
proof; the one is human, the other is a gift of God. Justus ex fide vivit. 4 It
is this faith that God Himself puts into the heart, of which the proof is often the
instrument, fides ex auditu; 5 but this faith is in the heart, and makes us not
say scio, 6 but credo. 7
[Footnote 4: Romans, i. 17.]
[Footnote 5: Romans, x. 17.]
[Footnote 6: "I know."]
[Footnote 7: "I believe."]
249
It is superstition to put one's hope in formalities; but it is pride to be unwilling to
submit to them.
250
The external must be joined to the internal to obtain anything from God, that is to
say, we must kneel, pray with the lips, &c., in order that proud man, who would not
submit himself to God, may be now subject to the creature. To expect help from these
externals is superstition; to refuse them to the internal is pride.
251
Other religions, as the pagan, are more popular, for they consist in externals. But
they are not for educated people. A purely intellectual religion would be more suited to
the learned, but it would be of no use to the common people. The Christian religion alone
is adapted to all, being composed of externals and internals. It raises the common people
to the internal, and humbles the proud to the external; it is not perfect without the two,
for the people must understand the spirit of the letter, and the learned must submit their
spirit to the letter.
252
For we must not misunderstand ourselves; we are as much automatic as intellectual; and
hence it comes that the instrument by which conviction is attained is not demonstration
alone. How few things are demonstrated? Proofs only convince the mind. Custom is the
source of our strongest and most believed proofs. It bends the automaton, which persuades
the mind without its thinking about the matter. Who has demonstrated that there will be a
to-morrow, and that we shall die? And what is more believed? It is then custom which
persuades us of it; it is custom that makes so many men Christians; custom that makes them
Turks, heathens, artisans, soldiers, &c. (Faith in baptism is more received among
Christians than among Turks.) Finally, we must have recourse to it when once the mind has
seen where the truth is, in order to quench our thirst, and steep ourselves in that
belief, which escapes us at every hour; for always to have proofs ready is too much
trouble. We must get an easier belief, which is that of custom, which, without violence,
without art, without argument, makes us believe things, and inclines all our powers to
this belief, so that our soul falls naturally into it. It is not enough to believe only by
force of conviction, when the automaton is inclined to believe the contrary. Both our
parts must be made to believe, the mind by reasons which it is sufficient to have seen
once in a lifetime, and the automaton by custom, and by not allowing it to incline to the
contrary. Inclina cor meum, Deus. 8
[Footnote 8: Psalms, cxix. 36.]
The reason acts slowly, with so many examinations, and on so many principles, which
must be always present, that at every hour it falls asleep, or wanders, through want of
having all its principles present. Feeling does not act thus; it acts in a moment, and is
always ready to act. We must then put our faith in feeling; otherwise it will be always
vacillating.
253
Two extremes: to exclude reason, to admit reason only.
254
It is not a rare thing to have to reprove the world for too much docility. It is a
natural vice like credulity, and as pernicious. Superstition.
255
Piety is different from superstition.
To carry piety as far as superstition is to destroy it.
The heretics reproach us for this superstitious submission. This is to do what they
reproach us for . . .
Infidelity, not to believe in the Eucharist, because it is not seen.
Superstition to believe propositions. Faith, &c.
256
I say there are few true Christians, even as regards faith. There are many who believe
but from superstition. There are many who do not believe solely from wickedness. Few are
between the two.
In this I do not include those who are of truly pious character, nor all those who
believe from a feeling in their heart.
257
There are only three kinds of persons: those who serve God, having found Him; others
who are occupied in seeking Him, not having found Him; while the remainder live without
seeking Him, and without having found Him. The first are reasonable and happy, the last
are foolish and unhappy; those between are unhappy and reasonable.
258
Unus quisque sibi Deum fingit. 9
[Footnote 9: "Each one makes a God for himself."]
Disgust.
259
Ordinary people have the power of not thinking of that about which they do not wish to
think. "Do not meditate on the passages about the Messiah," said the Jew to his
son. Thus our people often act. Thus are false religions preserved, and even the true one,
in regard to many persons.
But there are some who have not the power of thus preventing thought, and who think so
much the more as they are forbidden. These undo false religions, and even the true one, if
they do not find solid argume ts.
260
They hide themselves in the press, and call numbers to their rescue. Tumult.
Authority. - So far from making it a rule to believe a thing because you have heard it,
you ought to believe nothing without putting yourself into the position as if you had
never heard it.
It is your own assent to yourself, and the constant voice of your own reason, and not
of others, that should make you believe.
Belief is so important! A hundred contradictions might be true. If antiquity were the
rule of belief, men of ancient time would then be without rule. If general consent, if men
had perished?
False humility, pride.
Lift the curtain. You try in vain; if you must either believe, or deny, or doubt. Shall
we then have no rule? We judge that animals do well what they do. Is there no rule whereby
to judge men?
To deny, to believe, and to doubt well, are to a man what the race is to a horse.
Punishment of those who sin, error.
261
Those who do not love the truth take as a pretext that it is disputed, and that a
multitude deny it. And so their error arises only from this, that they do not love either
truth or charity. Thus they are without excuse.
262
Superstition and lust. Scruples, evil desires. Evil fear; fear, not such as comes from
a belief in God, but such as comes from a doubt whether He exists or not. True fear comes
from faith; false fear comes from doubt. True fear is joined to hope, because it is born
of faith, and because men hope in the God in whom they believe. False fear is joined to
despair, because men fear the God in whom they have no belief. The former fear to lose
Him; the latter fear to find Him.
263
"A miracle," says one, "would strengthen my faith." He says so when
he does not see one. Reasons, seen from afar, appear to limit our view; but when they are
reached, we begin to see beyond. Nothing stops the nimbleness of our mind. There is no
rule, say we, which has not some exceptions, no truth so general which has not some aspect
in which it fails. It is sufficient that it be not absolutely universal to give us a
pretext for applying the exception to the present subject, and for saying, "This is
not always true; there are therefore cases where it is not so." It only remains to
show that this is one of them; and that is why we are very awkward or unlucky, if we do
not find one some day.
264
We do not weary of eating and sleeping every day, for hunger and sleepiness recur.
Without that we should weary of them. So, without the hunger for spiritual things, we
weary of them. Hunger after righteousness, the eight beatitude.
265
Faith indeed tells what the senses do not tell, but not the contrary of what they see.
It is above them, and not contrary to them.
266
How many stars have telescopes revealed to us which did not exist for our philosophers
of old! We freely attack Holy Scripture on the great number of stars, saying, "There
are only one thousand and twenty-eight, we know it." There is grass on the earth, we
see it - from the moon we would not see it and on the grass are leaves, and in these
leaves are small animals; but after that no more. - O presumptuous man! - the compounds
are composed of elements, and the elements not. - O presumptuous man! Here is a fine
reflection. - We must not say that there is anything which we do not see. - We must then
talk like others, but not think like them.
267
The last proceeding of reason is to recognize that there is an infinity of things which
are beyond it. It is but feeble if it does not see so far as to know this. But if natural
things are beyond it, what will be said of supernatural?
268
Submission. - We must know where to doubt, where to feel certain, where to submit. He
who does not do so, understands not the force of reason. There are some who offend against
these three rules, either by affirming everything as demonstrative, from want of knowing
what demonstration is; or by doubting everything, from want of knowing where to submit; or
by submitting in everything, from want of knowing where they must judge.
269
Submission is the use of reason in which consists true Christianity.
270
St. Augustine. - Reason would never submit, if it did not judge that there are some
occasions on which it ought to submit. It is then right for it to submit, when it judges
that it ought to submit.
271
Wisdom sends us to childhood. Nisi efficiamini sicut parvuli. 10
Footnote 10: Matthew, xviii. 3.]
272
There is nothing so conformable to reason as this disavowal of reason.
273
If we submit everything to reason, our religion will have no mysterious and
supernatural element. If we offend the principles of reason, our religion will be absurd
and ridiculous.
274
All our reasoning reduces itself to yielding to feeling.
But fancy is like, though contrary to feeling, so that we cannot distinguish between
these contraries. One person says that my feeling is fancy, another that his fancy is
feeling. We should have a rule. Reason offers itself; but it is pliable in every sense;
and thus there is no rule.
275
Men often take their imagination for their heart; and they believe they are converted
as soon as they think of being converted.
276
M. de Roannez said: "Reasons come to me afterwards, but at first a thing pleases
or shocks me without my knowing the reason, and yet it shocks me for that reason which I
only discover afterwards." But I believe, not that it shocked him for the reasons
which were found afterwards, but that these reasons were only found because it shocks him.
277
The heart has its reasons, which reason does not know. We feel it in a thousand things.
I say that the heart naturally loves the Universal Being, and also itself naturally,
according as it gives itself to them; and it hardens itself against one or the other at
its will. You have rejected the one, and kept the other. Is it by reason that you love
yourself?
278
It is the heart which experiences God, and not the reason. This, then, is faith: God
felt by the heart, not by the reason.
279
Faith is a gift of God; do not believe that we said it was a gift of reasoning. Other
religions do not say this of their faith. They only gave reasoning in order to arrive at
it, and yet it does not bring them to it.
280
The knowledge of God is very far from the love of Him.
281
Heart, instinct, principles.
282
We know truth, not only by the reason, but also by the heart, and it is in this last
way that we know first principles; and reason, which has no part in it, tries in vain to
impugn them. The sceptics, who have only this for their object, labour to no purpose. We
know that we do not dream, and however impossible it is for us to prove it by reason, this
inability demonstrates only the weakness of our reason, but not, as they affirm, the
uncertainty of all our knowledge. For the knowledge of first principles, as space, time,
motion, number, is as sure as any of those which we get from reasoning. And reason must
trust these intuitions of the heart, and must base on them every argument. (We have
intuitive knowledge of the tri-dimensional nature of space, and of the infinity of number,
and reason then shows that there are two square numbers one of which is double of the
other. Principles are intuited, propositions are inferred, all with certainty, though in
different ways.) And it is as useless and absurd for reason to demand from the heart
proofs of her first principles, before admitting them, as it would be for the heart to
demand from reason an intuition of all demonstrated propositions before accepting them.
This inability ought, then, to serve only to humble reason, which would judge all, but
not to impugn our certainty, as if only reason were capable of instructing us. Would to
God, on the contrary, that we had never need of it, and that we knew everything by
instinct and intuition! But nature has refused us this boon. On the contrary, she has
given us but very little knowledge of this kind; and all the rest can be acquired only by
reasoning.
Therefore, those to whom God has imparted religion by intuition are very fortunate, and
justly convinced. But to those who do not have it, we can give it only by reasoning,
waiting for God to give them spiritual insight, without which faith is only human, and
useless for salvation.
283
Order. - Against the objection that Scripture has no order.
The heart has its own order; the intellect has its own, which is by principle and
demonstration. The heart has another. We do not prove that we ought to be loved by
enumerating in order the causes of love; that would be ridiculous.
Jesus Christ and Saint Paul employ the rule of love, not of intellect; for they would
warm, not instruct. It is the same with Saint Augustine. This order consists chiefly in
digressions on each point to indicate the end, and keep it always in sight.
284
Do not wonder to see simple people believe without reasoning. God imparts to them love
of Him and hatred of self. He inclines their heart to believe. Men will never believe with
a saving and real faith, unless God inclines their heart; and they will believe as soon as
He inclines it. And this is what David knew well, when he said: Inclina cor meum, Deus, in
. . . 11
[Footnote 11: Psalms, cxix. 36.]
285
Religion is suited to all kinds of minds. Some pay attention only to its establishment,
and this religion is such that its very establishment suffices to prove its truth. Others
trace it even to the apostles. The more learned go back to the beginning of the world. The
angels see it better still, and from a more distant time.
286
Those who believe without having read the Testaments, do so because they have an inward
disposition entirely holy, and all that they hear of our religion conforms to it. They
feel that a God has made them; they desire only to love God ; they desire to hate
themselves only. They feel that they have no strength in themselves; that they are
incapable of coming to God; and that if God does not come to them, they can have no
communion with Him. And they hear our religion say that men must love God only, and hate
self only; but that all being corrupt and unworthy of God, God made Himself man to unite
Himself to us. No more is required to persuade men who have this disposition in their
heart, and who have this knowledge of their duty and of their inefficiency.
287
Those whom we see to be Christians without the knowledge of the prophecies and
evidences, nevertheless judge of their religion as well as those who have that knowledge.
They judge of it by the heart, as others judge of it by the intellect. God Himself
inclines them to believe, and thus they are most effectively convinced.
I confess indeed that one of those Christians who believe without proofs will not
perhaps be capable of convincing an infidel who will say the same of himself. But those
who know the proofs of religion will prove without difficulty that such a believer is
truly inspired by God, though he cannot prove it himself.
For God having said in His prophecies (which are undoubtedly prophecies), that in the
reign of Jesus Christ He would spread His spirit abroad among nations, and that the youths
and maidens and children of the Church would prophesy; it is certain that the Spirit of
God is in these, and not in the others.
288
Instead of complaining that God has hidden Himself, you will give Him thanks for having
revealed so much of Himself; and you will also give Him thanks for not having revealed
Himself to haughty sages, unworthy to know so holy as God.
Two kinds of persons know Him: those who have a humble heart, and who love lowliness,
whatever kind of intellect they may have, high or low; and those who have sufficient
understanding to see the truth, whatever opposition they may have to it.
289
Proof. - 1. The Christian religion, by its establishment, having established itself so
strongly, so gently, whilst so contrary to nature. - 2. The sanctity, the dignity, and the
humility of a Christian soul. - 3. The miracles of Holy Scripture. - 4. Jesus Christ in
particular. - 5. The apostles in particular. - 6. Moses and the prophets in particular. -
7. The Jewish people. - 8. The prophecies. - 9. Perpetuity: no religion has perpetuity.
10. The doctrine which gives a reason for everything. - 11. The sanctity of this law. -
12. By the course of the world.
Surely, after considering what is life and what is religion, we should not refuse to
obey the inclination to follow it, if it comes into our heart; and it is certain that
there is no ground for laughing at those who follow it.
290
Proofs of religion. - Morality, Doctrine, Miracles, Prophecies, Types.
Section V
Justice and the Reason of Effects
291
In the letter On Injustice can come the ridiculousness of the law that the elder gets
all. "My friend, you were born on this side of the mountain, it is therefore just
that your elder brother gets everything."
"Why do you kill me?"
292
He lives on the other side of the water.
293
"Why do you kill me? What! do you not live on the other side of the water? If you
lived on this side, my friend, I should be an assassin, and it would be unjust to slay you
in this manner. But since you live on the other side, I am a hero, and it is just."
294
. . . On what shall man found the order of the world which he would govern? Shall it be
on the caprice of each individual? What confusion! Shall it be on justice? Man is ignorant
of it.
Certainly had he known it, he would not have established this maxim, the most general
of all that obtain among men, that each should follow the customs of his own country. The
glory of true equity would have brought all nations under subjection, and legislators
would not have taken as their model the fancies and caprice of Persians and Germans
instead of this unchanging justice. We should have seen it set up in all the States on
earth and in all times; whereas we see neither justice nor injustice which does not change
its nature with change in climate. Three degrees of latitude reverse all jurisprudence; a
meridian decides the truth. Fundamental laws change after a few years of possession; right
has its epochs; the entry of Saturn into the lion marks to us the origin of such and such
a crime. A strange justice that is bounded by a river! Truth on this side of the Pyrenees,
error on the other side.
Men admit that justice does not consist in these customs, but that it resides in
natural laws, common to every country. They would certainly maintain it obstinately, if
reckless chance which has distributed human laws had encountered even one which was
universal; but the farce is that the caprice of men has so many vagaries that there is no
such law.
Theft, incest, infanticide, patricide, have all had a place among virtuous actions. Can
anything be more ridiculous than that a man should have the right to kill me because he
lives on the other side of the water, and because his ruler has a quarrel with mine,
though I have none with him?
Doubtless there are natural laws; but good reason once corrupted has corrupted all.
Nihil amplius nostrum est; quod nostrum dicimus, artis est. 1 Ex senatus
consultis et plebiscitis crimina exercentur. 2 Ut olim vitiis, sic nunc legibus
laboramus. 3
[Footnote 1: "We can claim nothing more; what we call ours is art's."]
[Footnote 2: "Decrees of the senate and of the people are responsible for
crimes."]
[Footnote 3: "As once we suffered from vices, so now from laws."]
The result of this confusion is that one affirms the essence of justice to be the
authority of the legislator; another, the interest of the sovereign; another, present
custom, and this is the most sure. Nothing, according to reason alone, is just in itself;
all changes with time. Custom creates the whole of equity, for the simple reason that it
is accepted. It is the mystical foundation of its authority; whoever carries it back to
first principles destroys it. Nothing is so faulty as those laws which correct faults. He
who obeys them because they are just, obeys a justice which is imaginary, and not the
essence of law; it is quite self-contained, it is law and nothing more. He who will
examine its motive will find it so feeble and so trifling that if he be not accustomed to
contemplate the wonders of human imagination, he will marvel that one century has gained
for it so much pomp and reverence. The art of opposition and of revolution is to unsettle
established customs, sounding them even to their source, to point out their want of
authority and justice. We must, it is said, get back to the natural and fundamental laws
of the State, which an unjust custom has abolished. It is a game certain to result in the
loss of all; nothing will be just on the balance. Yet people readily lend their ear to
such arguments. They shake off the yoke as soon as they recognise it; and the great profit
by their ruin, and by that of these curious investigators of accepted customs. But from a
contrary mistake men sometimes think they can justly do everything which is not without an
example. That is why the wisest of legislators said that it was often necessary to deceive
men for their own good; and another, a good politician, cum veritatem qua liberetur
ignoret, expedit quod fallatur. 4 We must not see the fact of usurpation; law
was once introduced without reason, and has become reasonable. We must make it regarded as
authoritative, eternal, and conceal its origin, if we do not wish that it should soon come
to an end.
[Footnote 4: "When a man does not understand the truth by which he might be freed,
it is expedient that he should be deceived." - St. Augustine.]
295
Mine, thine. - "This dog is mine," said those poor children; "that is my
place in the sun." Here is the beginning and the image of the usurpation of all the
earth.
296
When the question for consideration is whether we ought to make war, and kill so many
men - condemn so many Spaniards to death - only one man is judge, and he is an interested
party. There should be a third, who is disinterested.
297
Veri juris. 5 - We have it no more; if we had it, we should take conformity
to the customs of a country as the rule of justice. It is here that, not finding justice,
we have found force, &c.
[Footnote 5: "Of the true law."]
298
Justice, Might. - It is tright that what is just should be obeyed; it is necessary that
what is strongest should be obeyed. Justice without might is helpless; might without
justice is tyrannical. Justice without might is gainsaid, because there are always
offenders; might without justice is condemned. We must then combine justice and might, and
for this end make what is just strong, or what is strong just.
Justice is subject to dispute; might is easily recognized and is not disputed. So we
cannot give might to justice, because might has gainsaid justice, and has declared that it
is she herself who is just. And thus being unable to make what is just strong, we have
made what is strong just.
299
The only universal rules are the laws of the country in ordinary affairs, and of the
majority in others. Whence comes this? From the might which is in them. Hence it comes
that kings, who have power of a different kind, do not follow the majority of their
ministers.
No doubt equality of goods is just; but, being unable to cause might to obey justice,
men have made it just to obey might. Unable to strengthen justice, they have justified
might; so that the just and the strong should unite, and there should be peace, which is
the sovereign good.
300
"When a strong man armed keepeth his goods, his goods are in peace."
301
Why do we follow the majority? Is it because they have more reason? No, because they
have more power.
Why do we follow ancient laws and opinions? It is because they are more sound? No, but
because they are unique, and remove from us the root of difference.
302
. . . It is the effect of might, not of custom. For those who are capable of
originality are few; the greater number will only follow, and refuse glory to those
inventors who seek it by their inventions. And if these are obstinate in their wish to
obtain glory, and despise those who do not invent, the latter will call them ridiculous
names, and would beat them with a stick. Let no one then boast of his subtility, or let
him keep his complacency to himself.
303
Might is the sovereign of the world, and not opinion. - But opinion makes use of might.
- It is might that makes opinion. Gentleness is beautiful in our opinion. Why? Because he
who will dance on a rope will be alone, and I will gather a stronger mob of people who
will say that it is unbecoming.
304
The cords which bind the respect of men to each other are in general cords of
necessity; for there must be different degrees, all men wishing to rule, and not all being
able to do so, but some being able.
Let us then imagine we see society in the process of formation. Men will doubtless
fight till the stronger party overcomes the weaker, and a dominant party is established.
But when this is once determined, the masters, who do not desire the continuation of
strife, then decree that the power which is in their hands shall be transmitted as they
please. Some place it in election by the people, others in hereditary succession, &c.
And this is the point where imagination begins to play its part. Till now power makes
fact; now power is sustained by imagination in a certain party, in France in the nobility,
in Switzerland in the burgesses, &c.
These cords which bind the respect of men to such and such an individual are therefore
the cords of imagination.
305
The Swiss are offended by being called gentlemen, and prove themselves true plebeians
in order to be thought worthy of great office.
306
As duchies, kingships, and magistracies are real and necessary, because might rules
all, they exist everywhere and always. But since only caprice makes such and such a one a
ruler, the principle is not constant, but subject to variation, &c.
307
The chancellor is grave, and clothed with ornaments, for his position is unreal. Not so
the king, he has power, and has nothing to do with the imagination. Judges, physicians,
&c., appeal only to the imagination.
308
The habit of seeing kings accompanied by guards, drums, officers, and all the
paraphernalia which mechanically inspire respect and awe, makes their countenance, when
sometimes seen alone without these accompaniments, impress respect and awe on their
subjects; because we cannot separate in thought their persons from the surroundings with
which we see them usually joined. And the world, which knows not that this effect is the
result of habit, believes that it arises by a natural force, whence come these words,
"The character of Divinity is stamped on his countenance," &c.
309
Justice. - As custom determines what is agreeable, so also does it determine justice.
310
King and tyrant. - I, too, will keep my thoughts secret.
I will take care on every journey.
Greatness of establishment, respect for establishment.
The pleasure of the great is the power to make people happy.
The property of riches is to be given liberally.
The property of each thing must be sought. The property of power is to protect.
When force attacks humbug, when a private soldier takes the square cap off a first
president, and throws it out of the window.
311
The government founded on opinion and imagination reigns for some time, and this
government is pleasant and voluntary; that founded on might lasts for ever. Thus opinion
is the queen of the world, but might is its tyrant.
312
Justice is what is established; and thus all our established laws will necessarily be
regarded as just without examination, since they are established.
313
Sound opinions of the people. - Civil wars are the greatest of evils. They are
inevitable, if we wish to reward desert; for all will say they are deserving. The evil we
have to fear from a fool who succeeds by right of birth is, neither so great nor so sure.
314
God has created all for Himself. He has bestowed upon Himself the power of pain and
pleasure.
You can apply it to God, or to yourself. If to God, the Gospel is the rule. If to
yourself, you will take the place of God. As God is surrounded by persons full of charity,
who ask of Him the blessings of charity that are in His power, so . . . Recognise then and
learn that you are only a king of lust, and take the ways of lust.
315
The Reason of effects. - It is wonderful that men would not have me honour a man
clothed in brocade, and followed by seven or eight lackeys! Why! He will have me thrashed,
if I do not salute him. This custom is a force. It is the same with a horse in fine
trappings in comparison with another! Montaigne is a fool not to see what difference there
is, to wonder at our finding any, and to ask the reason. "Indeed," says he,
"how comes it," &c. . .
316
Sound opinions of the people. - To be spruce is not altogether foolish, for it proves
that a great number of people work for one. It shows by one's hair, that one has a valet,
a perfumer, &c., by one's band, thread, lace, . . . &c. Now it is not merely
superficial nor merely outward show to have many arms at command. The more arms one has,
the more powerful one is. To be spruce is to show one's power.
317
Deference means, "Put yourself to inconvenience." This is apparently silly,
but is quite right. For it is to say, "I would indeed put myself to inconvenience if
you required it, since indeed I do so when it is of no service to you." Deference
further serves to distinguish the great. Now if deference was displayed by sitting in an
arm-chair, we should show deference to everybody, and so no distinction would be made;
but, being put to inconvenience, we distinguish very well.
318
He has four lackeys.
319
How rightly do we distinguish men by external appearances rather than by internal
qualities! Which of us two shall have precedence? Who will give place to the other? The
least clever. But I am as clever as he. We should have to fight over this. He has four
lackeys, and I have only one. This can be seen; we have only to count. It falls to me to
yield, and I am a fool if I contest the matter. By this means we are at peace, which is
the greatest of boons.
320
The most unreasonable things in the world become most reasonable, because of the
unruliness of men. What is less reasonable than to choose the eldest son of a queen to
rule a State? We do not choose as captain of a ship the passenger who is of the best
family.
This law would be absurd and unjust; but because men are so themselves, and always will
be so, it becomes reasonable and just. For whom will men choose, as the most virtuous and
able? We at once come to blows, as each claims to be the most virtuous and able. Let us
then attach this quality to something indisputable. This is the king's eldest son. That is
clear, and there is no dispute. Reason can do no better, for civil war is the greatest of
evils.
321
Children are astonished to see their comrades respected.
322
To be of noble birth is a great advantage. In eighteen years it places a man within the
select circle, known and respected, as another would have merited in fifty years. It is a
gain of thirty years without trouble.
323
What is the Ego?
Suppose a man puts himself at a window to see those who pass by. If I pass by, can I
say that he placed himself there to see me? No; for he does not think of me in particular.
But does he who loves some one on account of beauty really love that person? No; for the
small-pox, which will kill beauty without killing the person, will cause him to love her
no more.
And if one loves me for my judgment, memory, he does not love me, for I can lose these
qualities without losing myself. Where then is this Ego, if it be neither in the body nor
in the soul? And how love the body or the soul, except for these qualities which do not
constitute me, since they are perishable? For it is impossible and would be unjust to love
the soul of a person in the abstract, and whatever qualities might be therein. We never
then love a person, but only qualities.
Let us then jeer no more at those who are honoured on account of rank and office; for
we love a person only on account of borrowed qualities.
324
The people have very sound opinions, for example:
1. In having preferred diversion and hunting to poetry. The half-learned laugh at it,
and glory in being above the folly of the world; but the people are right for a reason
which these do not fathom.
2. In having distinguished men by external marks, as birth or wealth. The world again
exults in showing how unreasonable this is; but it is very reasonable. Savages laugh at an
infant king.
3. In being offended at a blow, or in desiring glory so much. But it is very desirable
on account of the other essential goods which are joined to it; and a man who has received
a blow, without resenting it, is overwhelmed with taunts and indignities.
4. In working for the uncertain; in sailing on the sea; in walking over a plank.
325
Montaigne is wrong. Custom should be followed only because it is custom, and not
because it is reasonable or just. But people follow it for this sole reason, that they
think it just. Otherwise they would follow it no longer, although it were the custom; for
they will only submit to reason or justice. Custom without this would pass for tyranny;
but the sovereignty of reason and justice is no more tyrannical than that of desire. They
are principles natural to man.
It would therefore be right to obey laws and customs, because they are laws; but we
should know that there is neither truth nor justice to introduce into them; that we know
nothing of these, and so must follow what is accepted. By this means we would never depart
from them. But the people cannot accept this doctrine; and, as they believe that truth can
be found, and that it exists in law and custom, they believe them, and take their
antiquity as a proof of their truth, and not simply of their authority apart from truth.
Thus they obey laws, but they are liable to revolt when these are proved to be valueless;
and this can be shown of all, looked at from a certain aspect.
326
Injustice. - It is dangerous to tell the people that the laws are unjust; for they obey
them only because they think them just. Therefore it is necessary to tell them at the same
time that they must obey them because they are laws, just as they must obey superiors, not
because they are just, but because they are superiors. In this way all sedition is
prevented, if this can be made intelligible, and it be understood what is the proper
definition of justice.
327
The world is a good judge of things, for it is in natural ignorance, which is man's
true state. The sciences have two extremes which meet. The first is the pure natural
ignorance in which all men find themselves at birth. The other extreme is that reached by
great intellects, who, having run through all that men can know, find they know nothing,
and come back again to that same ignorance from which they set out; but this is a learned
ignorance which is conscious of itself. Those between the two, who have departed from
natural ignorance and not been able to reach the other, have some smattering of this vain
knowledge, and pretend to be wise. These trouble the world, and are bad judges of
everything. The people and the wise constitute the world; these despise it, and are
despised. They judge badly of everything, and the world judges rightly of them.
328
The reason of effects. - Continual alternation of pro and con.
We have then shown that man is foolish, by the estimation he makes of things which are
not essential; and all these opinions are destroyed. We have next shown that all these
opinions are very sound, and that thus, since all these vanities are well founded, the
people are not so foolish as is said. And so we have destroyed the opinion which destroyed
that of the people.
But we must now destroy this last proposition, and show that it remains always true
that the people are foolish, though their opinions are sound; because they do not perceive
the truth where it is, and, as they place it where it is not, their opinions are always
very false and very unsound.
329
The weakness of man is the reason why so many things are considered fine, as to be good
at playing the lute.
It is only an evil because of our weakness.
330
The power of kings is founded on the reason and on the folly of the people, and
specially on their folly. The greatest and most important thing in the world has weakness
for its foundation, and this foundation is wonderfully sure; for there is nothing more
sure than this, that the people will be weak. What is based on sound reason is very ill
founded, as the estimate of wisdom.
331
We can only think of Plato and Aristotle in grand academic robes. They were honest men,
like others, laughing with their friends, and when they diverted themselves with writing
the Laws and the Politics, they did it as an amusement. That part of their life was the
least philosophic and the least serious; the most philosophic was to live simply and
quietly. If they wrote on politics, it was as if laying down rules for a lunatic asylum;
and if they presented the appearance of speaking of a great matter, it was because they
knew that the madmen, to whom they spoke, thought they were kings and emperors. They
entered into their principles in order to make their madness as little harmful as
possible.
332
Tyranny consists in the desire of universal power beyond its scope. There are different
assemblies of the strong, the fair, the sensible, the pious, in which each man rules at
home, not elsewhere. And sometimes they meet, and the strong and the fair foolishly fight
as to who shall be master, for their mastery is of different kinds. They do not understand
one another, and their fault is the desire to rule everywhere. Nothing can effect this,
not even might, which is of no use in the kingdom of the wise, and is only mistress of
external actions.
Tyranny. - . . . So these expressions are false and tyrannical: "I am fair,
therefore I must be feared. I am strong, therefore I must be loved. I am . . ."
Tyranny is the wish to have in one way what can only be had in another. We render
different duties to different merits; the duty of love to the pleasant; the duty of fear
to the strong; the duty of belief to the learned.
We must render these duties; it is unjust to refuse them, and unjust to ask others. And
so it is false and tyrannical to say, "He is not strong, therefore I will not esteem
him; he is not able, therefore I will not fear him."
333
Have you never seen people who, in order to complain of the little fuss you make about
them, parade before you the example of great men who esteem them? In answer I reply to
them, "Show me the merit whereby you have charmed these persons, and I also will
esteem you."
334
The reason of effects. - Lust and force are the source of all our actions; lust causes
voluntary actions, force involuntary ones.
335
The reason of effects. - It is then true to say that all the world is under a delusion;
for, although the opinions of the people are sound, they are not so as conceived by them,
since they think the truth to be where it is not. Truth is indeed in their opinions, but
not at the point where they imagine it. [Thus] it is true that we must honour noblemen,
but not because noble birth is real superiority, &c.
336
The reason of effects. - We must keep our thought secret, and judge everything by it,
while talking like the people.
337
The reason of effects. - Degrees. The people honour persons of high birth. The
semi-learned despise them, saying that birth is not a personal, but a chance superiority.
The learned honour them, not for popular reasons, but for secret reasons. Devout persons,
who have more zeal than knowledge, despise them, in spite of that consideration which
makes them honoured by the learned, because they judge them by a new light which piety
gives them. But perfect Christians honour them by another and higher light. So arise a
succession of opinions for and against, according to the light one has.
338
True Christians nevertheless comply with folly, not because they respect folly, but the
command of God, who for the punishment of men has made them subject to these follies.
Omnis creatura subjecta est vanitati. Liberabitur. 6 Thus Saint Thomas explains
the passage in Saint James on giving place to the rich, that if they do it not in the
sight of God, they depart from the command of religion.
[Footnote 6: Romans, vii. 20-21]
Section VI
Part I
The Philosophers
339
I can well conceive a man without hands, feet, head (for it is only experience which
teaches us that the head is more necessary than feet). But I cannot conceive man without
thought; he would be a stone or a brute.
340
The arithmetical machine produces effects which approach nearer to thought than all the
actions of animals. But it does nothing which would enable us to attribute will to it, as
to the animals.
341
The account of the pike and frog of Liancourt. They do it always, and never otherwise,
nor any other thing showing mind.
342
If an animal did by mind what it does by instinct, and if it spoke by mind what it
speaks by instinct, in hunting, and in warning its mates that the prey is found or lost;
it would indeed als speak in regard to those things which affect it closer, as example,
"Gnaw me this cord which is wounding me, and which I cannot reach."
343
The beak of the parrot, which it wipes, although it is clean.
344
Instinct and reason, marks of two natures.
345
Reason commands us far more imperiously than a master; for in disobeying the one we are
unfortunate, and in disobeying the other we are fools.
346
Thought constitutes the greatness of man.
347
Man is but a reed, the most feeble thing in nature, but he is a thinking reed. The
entire universe need not arm itself to crush him. A vapour, a drop of water suffices to
kill him. But, if the universe were to crush him, man would still be more noble than that
which killed him, because he knows that he dies and the advantage which the universe has
over him; the universe knows nothing of this.
All our dignity consists then in thought. By it we must elevate ourselves, and not by
space and time which we cannot fill. Let us endeavour then to think well; this is the
principle of morality.
348
A thinking reed. - It is not from space that I must seek my dignity, but from the
government of my thought. I shall have no more if I possess worlds. By space the universe
encompasses and swallows me up like an atom; by thought I comprehend the world.
349
Immateriality of the soul. - Philosophers who have mastered their passions. What matter
could do that?
350
The Stoics. - They conclude that what has been done once can be done always, and that
since the desire of glory imparts some power to those whom it possesses, others can well
do likewise. There are feverish movements which health can not imitate.
Epictetus concludes that since there are consistent Christians, every man can easily be
so.
351
Those great spiritual efforts, which the soul sometimes essays, are things on which it
does not lay hold. It only leaps to them, not as upon a throne, for ever, but merely for
an instant.
352
The strength of a man's virtue must not be measured by his efforts, but by his ordinary
life.
353
I do not admire the excess of a virtue as of valour, except I see at the same time the
excess of the opposite virtue, as in Epaminondas, who had the greatest valour and the
greatest kindness. For otherwise it is not to rise, it is to fall. We do not display
greatness by going to one other extreme, but in touching both at once, and filling all the
intervening space. But perhaps this is only a sudden movement of the soul from one to the
extreme, and in fact it is ever at one point only, as in the case of a firebrand. Be it
so, but at least this indicates agility, if not expanse of soul.
354
Man's nature is not always to advance; it has its advances and retreats.
Fever has its cold and hot fits; and the cold proves as well as the hot the greatness
of the fire of fever.
The discoveries of men from age to age turn out the same. The kindness and the malice
of the world in general are the same. Plerumque gratae principibus vices. 1
[Footnote 1: "Changes are usually pleasing to princes." - Horace.]
355
Continuous eloquence wearies.
Princes and kings sometimes play. They are not always on their thrones. They weary
there. Grandeur must be abandoned to be appreciated. Continuity in everything is
unpleasant. Cold is agreeable, that we may get warm.
Nature acts by progress, itus et reditus. It goes and returns, then advances further,
then twice as much backwards, then more forward than ever, &c.
The tide of the sea behaves in the same manner; and so apparently does the sun in its
course.
356
The nourishment of the body is little by little. Fulness of nourishment and smallness
of substance.
357
When we would pursue virtues to their extremes on either side, vices present
themselves, which insinuate themselves insensibly there, in their insensible journey
towards the infinitely little; and vices present themselves in a crowd towards the
infinitely great, so that we lose ourselves in them, and no longer see virtues. We find
fault with perfection itself.
358
Man is neither angel nor brute, and the unfortunate thing is that he who would act the
angel acts the brute.
359
We do not sustain ourselves in virtue by our own strength, but by the balancing of two
opposed vices, just as we remain upright amidst two contrary gales. Remove one of the
vices, and we fall into the other.
360
What the Stoics propose is so difficult and foolish!
The Stoics lay down that all those who are not at the high degree of wisdom are equally
foolish and vicious, as those who are two inches under water.
361
The Sovereign good. Dispute about the sovereign good. - Ut sis contentus temetipso et
ex te nascentibus bonis. 2 There is a contradiction, for in the end they advise
suicide. Oh! What a happy life, from which we are to free ourselves as from the plague!
[Footnote 2: "That you may be contented with yourself and the good things that
spring from you." - Seneca.]
362
Ex senatus-consultis et plebiscitis . . .
To ask like passages.
363
Ex senatus-consultis et plebiscitis scelera exercentur. Sen. 588. 3
Nihil tam absurd dici potest quod non dicatur ab aliquo philosophorum. 4
Divin.
Quibusdam destinatis sententiis consecrati quae non probant coguntur defendere. 5
Cic.
Ut omnium rerum sic litterarum quoque intemperantia laboramus. 6 Senec.
Id maxime quemque decet, quod est cujusque suum maxime. 7
Hos natura modos primum dedit. 8
Paucis opus est litteris ad bonam mentem. 9
Si quando turpe non sit, tamen non est non turpe quum id ab multitudine laudetur. 10
Mihi sic usus est, tibi ut opus est facto, fac. 11 Ter.
[Footnote 3: "Decrees of the senate and of the people are responsible for
crimes." - Seneca.]
[Footnote 4: "Nothing can be said so absurd that it may not be said by some
philosopher." - Cicero, Divinatione.]
[Footnote 5: "Those who are given over to certain preconceived ideas are forced to
defend what they cannot prove." - Cicero.]
[Footnote 6: "In literature as in all things, we labor in excess." - Seneca.]
[Footnote 7: "That becomes any one best which is most his own." - Cicero.]
[Footnote 8: "Nature first gave those customs." - Virgil.]
[Footnote 9: "For the good mind few books are necessary."]
[Footnote 10: "If perchance a thing is not base, it does not escape baseness by
being praised by the crowd."]
[Footnote 11: "That is my custom; you must do as necessity bids." - Terence.]
364
Rarum est enim ut satis se quisque vereatur. 12
Tot circa unum caput tumultuantes deos. 13
Nihil turpius quam cognitioni assertionem praecurrere. 14 Cic.
Nec me pudet, ut istos, fateri nescire quid nesciam. 15
Melius non incipiet. 16
[Footnote 12: "It is a rare thing for any one to fear himself enough."]
[Footnote 13: "So many gods brawling around one poor man."
[Footnote 14: There is nothing more unseemly than to understand before the thing has
been stated."]
[Footnote 15: "I am not ashamed, as your friends are, to confess that I do not
know what I do not know."]
[Footnote 16: "He will not begin better (than he can finish)." - Seneca.]
365
Thought. - All the dignity of man consists in thought. Thought is therefore by its
nature a wonderful and incomparable thing. It must have strange defects to be
contemptible. But it has such, so that nothing is more ridiculous. How great it is in its
nature! How vile it is in its defects!
But what is this thought? How foolish it is!
366
The mind of this sovereign judge of the world is not so independent that it is not
liable to be disturbed by the first din about it. The noise of a cannon is not necessary
to hinder its thoughts; it needs only the creaking of a weather cock or a pulley. Do not
wonder if at present it does not reason well; a fly is buzzing in its ears; that is enough
to render it incapable of good judgment. If you wish it to be able to reach the truth,
chase away that animal which holds its reason in check and disturbs that powerful
intellect which rules towns and kingdoms. Here is a comical god! O ridicolosissimo eroe! 17
[Footnote 17: "O most ridiculous hero."]
367
The power of flies: they win battles, hinder our soul from acting, eat our body.
368
When it is said that heat is only the motion of certain molecules, and light the
conatus recedendi which we feel, it astonishes us. What! Is pleasure only the ballet of
our spirits? We have conceived so different an idea of it! And these sensations seem so
removed from those others which we say are the same as those with which we compare them!
The sensation from the fire, that warmth which affects us in a manner wholly different
from touch, the reception of sound and light, all this appears to us mysterious, and yet
it is material like the blow of a stone. It is true that the smallness of the spirits
which enter into the pores touches other nerves, but there are always some nerves touched.
369
Memory is necessary for all the operations of reason.
370
[Chance gives rise to thoughts, and chance removes them; no art can keep or acquire
them.
A thought has escaped me. I wanted to write it down. I write instead, that it has
escaped me.]
371
[When I was small, I hugged my book; and because it sometimes happened to me to ... in
believing I hugged it, I doubted....]
Part II
372
In writing down my thought, it sometimes escapes me; but this makes me remember my
weakness, that I constantly forget. This is as instructive to me as my forgotten thought;
for I strive only to know my nothingness.
373
Scepticism. - I shall here write my thoughts without order, and not perhaps in
unintentional confusion; that is true order, which will always indicate my object by its
very disorder. I should do too much honour to my subject, if I treated it with order,
since I want to show that it is incapable of it.
374
What astonishes me most is to see that all the world is not astonished at its own
weakness. Men act seriously, and each follows his own mode of life, not because it is in
fact good to follow since it is the custom, but as if each man knew certainly where reason
and justice are. They find themselves continually deceived, and by a comical humility
think it is their own fault, and not that of the art which they claim always to possess.
But it is well there are so many such people in the world, who are not sceptics for the
glory of scepticism, in order to show that man is quite capable of the most extravagant
opinions, since he is capable of believing that he is not in a state of natural and
inevitable weakness, but, on the contrary, of natural wisdom.
Nothing fortifies scepticism more than that there are some who are not sceptics; if all
were so, they would be wrong.
375
[I have passed a great part of my life believing that there was justice, and in this I
was not mistaken; for there is justice according as God has willed to reveal it to us. But
I did not take it so, and this is where I made a mistake; for I believe that our justice
was essentially just, and that I had that whereby to know and judge of it. But I have so
often found my right judgment at fault, that at last I have come to distrust myself, and
then others. I have seen changes in all nations and men, and thus after many changes of
judgment regarding true justice, I have recognised that our nature was but in continual
change, and I have not changed since; and if I changed, I would confirm my opinion.
The sceptic Arcesilaus, who became a dogmatist.]
376
This sect derives more strength from its enemies than from its friends; for the
weakness of man is far more evident in those who know it not than in those who know it.
377
Discourses on humility are a source of pride in the vain, and of humility in the
humble. So those on scepticism cause believers to affirm. Few men speak humbly of
humility, chastely of chastity, few doubtingly of scepticism. We are only falsehood,
duplicity, contradiction; we both conceal and disguise ourselves from ourselves.
378
Scepticism. - Excess, like defect of intellect, is accused of madness. Nothing is good
but mediocrity. The majority has settled that, and finds fault with him who escapes it at
whichever end. I will not oppose it. I quite consent to put myself there, and refuse to be
at the lower end, not because it is low, but because it is an end; for I would likewise
refuse to be placed at the top. To leave the mean is to abandon humanity. The greatness of
the human soul consists in knowing how to preserve the mean. So far from greatness
consisting in leaving it, it consists in not leaving it.
379
It is not good to have too much liberty. It is not good to have all one wants.
380
All good maxims are in the world. We only need to apply them. For instance, we do not
doubt that we ought to risk our lives in defence of the public good; but for religion, no.
It is true there must be inequality among men; but if this be conceded, the door is
opened not only to the highest power, but to the highest tyranny.
We must relax our minds a little; but this opens the door to the greatest debauchery.
Let us mark the limits. There are no limits in things. Laws would put them there, and the
mind cannot suffer it.
381
When we are too young, we do not judge well; so, also, when we are too old. If we do
not think enough, or if we think too much on any matter, we get obstinate and infatuated
about it. If one considers one's work immediately after having done it, one is entirely
prepossessed in its favour; by delaying too long, one can no longer enter into the spirit
of it. So with pictures seen from too far or too near; there is but one exact point which
is the true place wherefrom to look at them: the rest are too near, too far, too high, or
too low. Perspective determines that point in the art of painting. But who shall determine
it in truth and morality?
382
When all is equally agitated, nothing appears to be agitated, as in a ship. When all
tend to debauchery, none appears to do so. He who stops draws attention to the excess of
others, like a fixed point.
383
The licentious tell men of orderly lives that they stray from nature's path, while they
themselves follow it; as people in a ship think those move who are on the shore. On all
sides the language is similar. We must have a fixed point in order to judge. The harbour
decides for those who are in a ship; but where shall we find a harbour in morality?
384
Contradiction is a bad sign of truth; several things which are certain are
contradicted; several things which are false pass without contradiction. Contradiction is
not a sign of falsity, nor the want of contradiction a sign of truth.
385
Scepticism. - Each thing here is partly true and partly false. Essential truth is not
so; it is altogether pure and altogether true. This mixture dishonours and annihilates it.
Nothing is purely true, and thus nothing is true, meaning by that pure truth. You will say
it is true that homicide is wrong. Yes; for we know well the wrong and the false. But what
will you say is good? Chastity? I say no; for the world would come to an end. Marriage?
No; continence is better. Not to kill? No; for lawlessness would be horrible, and the
wicked would kill all the good. To kill? No; for that destroys nature. We possess truth
and goodness only in part, and mingled with falsehood and evil.
386
If we dreamt the same thing every night, it would affect us as much as the objects we
see every day. And if an artisan were sure to dream every night for twelve hours' duration
that he was a king, I believe he would be almost as happy as a king, who should dream
every night for twelve hours on end that he was an artisan.
If we were to dream every night that we were pursued by enemies, and harassed by these
painful phantoms, or that we passed every day in different occupations, as in making a
voyage, we should suffer almost as much as if it were real, and should fear to sleep, as
we fear to wake when we dread in fact to enter on such mishaps. And, indeed, it would
cause pretty nearly the same discomforts as the reality.
But since dreams are all different, and each single one is diversified, what is seen in
them affects us much less than what we see when awake, because of its continuity, which is
not, however, so continuous and level as not to change too; but it changes less abruptly,
except rarely, as when we travel, and then we say, "It seems to me I am
dreaming." For life is a dream a little less inconstant.
387
[It may be that there are true demonstrations; but this is not certain. Thus, this
proves nothing else but that it is not certain that all is uncertain, to the glory of
scepticism.]
388
Good sense. - They are compelled to say, "You are not acting in good faith; we are
not asleep," &c. How I love to see this proud reason humiliated and suppliant!
For this is not the language of a man whose right is disputed, and who defends it with the
power of armed hands. He is not foolish enough to declare that men are not acting in good
faith, but he punishes this bad faith with force.
389
Ecclesiastes shows that man without God is in total ignorance and inevitable misery.
For it is wretched to have the wish, but not the power. Now he would be happy and assured
of some truth, and yet he can neither know, nor desire not to know. He cannot even doubt.
390
My God! How foolish this talk is! "Would God have made the world to damn it? Would
He ask so much from persons so weak?" &c. Scepticism is the cure for this evil
and will take down this vanity.
391
Conversation. - Great words to religion. I deny it.
Conversation. - Scepticism helps religion.
392
Against Scepticism. - [ ... It is, then, a strange fact that we cannot define these
things without obscuring them, while we speak of them with all assurance.] We assume that
all conceive of them in the same way; but we assume it quite gratuitously, for we have no
proof of it. I see, in truth, that the same words are applied on the same occasions, and
that every time two men see a body change its place, they both express their view of this
same fact by the same word, both saying that it has moved; and from this conformity of
application we derive a strong conviction of a conformity of ideas. But this is not
absolutely or finally convincing, though there is enough to support a bet on the
affirmative, since we know that we often draw the same conclusions from different
premises.
This is enough, at least, to obscure the matter; not that it completely extinguishes
the natural light which assures us of these things. The academicians would have won. But
this dulls it, and troubles the dogmatists to the glory of the sceptical crowd, which
consists in this doubtful ambiguity, and in a certain doubtful dimness, from which our
doubts cannot take away all the clearness, nor our own natural lights chase away all the
darkness.
393
It is a singular thing to consider that there are people in the world, who, having
renounced all the laws of God and nature, have made laws for themselves which they
strictly obey, as, for instance, the soldiers of Mahomet, robbers, heretics, &c. It is
the same with logicians. It seems that their licence must be without any limits or
barriers since they have broken through so many that are so just and sacred.
394
All the principles of sceptics, stoics, atheist, &c., are true. But their
conclusions are false, because the opposite principles are also true.
395
Instinct, reason. - We have an incapacity of proof, insurmountable by all dogmatism. We
have an idea of truth, invincible to all scepticism.
396
Two things instruct man about his whole nature; instinct and experience.
397
The greatness of man is great in that he knows himself to be miserable. A tree does not
know itself to be miserable. It is then being miserable to know oneself to be miserable;
but it is also being great to know that one is miserable.
398
All these same miseries prove man's greatness. They are the miseries of a great lord,
of a deposed king.
399
We are not miserable without feeling it. A ruined house is not miserable. Man only is
miserable. Ego vir videns. 18
[Footnote 18: "I am the man (that hath seen affliction)." - Lamentations,
iii. I.]
400
The greatness of man. - We have so great an idea of the soul of man that we cannot
endure being despised, of not being esteemed by any soul; and all the happiness of men
consists in this esteem.
401
Glory. - The brutes do not admire each other. A horse does not admire his companion.
Not that there is no rivalry between them in a race, but that is of no consequence; for,
when in the stable, the heaviest and most ill-formed does not give up his oats to another
as men would have others do to them. Their virtue is satisfied with itself.
402
The greatness of man even in his lust, to have known how to extract from it a wonderful
code, and to have drawn from it a picture of benevolence.
403
Greatness. - The reasons of effects indicate the greatness of man, in having extracted
so fair an order from lust.
404
The greatest baseness of man is the pursuit of glory. But it is also the greatest mark
of his excellence; for whatever possessions he may have on earth, whatever health and
essential comfort, he is not satisfied if he has not the esteem of men. He values human
reason so highly that, whatever advantages he may have on earth, he is not content if he
is not also ranked highly in the judgment of man. This is the finest position in the
world. Nothing can turn him from that desire, which is the most indelible quality of man's
heart.
And those who most despise men, and put them on a level with the brutes, yet wish to be
admired and believed by men, and contradict themselves by their own feelings; their
nature, which is stronger than all, convincing them of the greatness of man more forcibly
than reason convinces them of their baseness.
405
Contradiction. - Pride counterbalancing all miseries. Man either hides his miseries,
or, if he disclose them, glories in knowing them.
406
Pride counterbalances and takes away all miseries. Here is a strange monster, and a
very plain aberration. He is fallen from his place, and is anxiously seeking it. This is
what all men do. Let us see who will have found it.
407
When malice has reason on its side, it becomes proud, and parades reason in all its
splendour. When austerity or stern choice has not arrived at the true good, and must needs
return to follow nature, it becomes proud by reason of this return.
408
Evil is easy, and has infinite forms; good is almost unique. But a certain kind of evil
is as difficult to find as what we call good; and often on this account such particular
evil gets passed off as good. An extraordinary greatness of soul is needed in order to
attain to it as well as to good.
409
The greatness of man. - The greatness of man is so evident, that it is even proved by
his wretchedness. For what in animals is nature we call in man wretchedness; by which we
recognise that, his nature being now like that of animals, he has fallen from a better
nature which once was his.
For who is unhappy at not being a king, except a deposed king? Was Paulus Emilius
unhappy at being no longer consul? On the contrary, everybody thought him happy in having
been consul, because the office could only be held for a time. But men thought Perseus so
unhappy in being no longer king, because the condition of kingship implied his being
always king, that they thought it strange that he endured life. Who is unhappy at having
only one mouth? And who is not unhappy at having only one eye? Probably no man ever
ventured to mourn at not having three eyes. But any one is inconsolable at having none.
410
Perseus, King of Macedon. - Paulus Emilius reproached Perseus for not killing himself.
411
Notwithstanding the sight of all our miseries, which press upon us and take us by the
throat, we have an instinct which we cannot repress, and which lifts us up.
412
There is internal war in man between reason and the passions.
If he had only reason without passions . . .
If he had only passions without reason . . .
But having both, he cannot be without strife, being unable to be at peace with the one
without being at war with the other. Thus he is always divided against, and opposed to
himself.
413
This internal war of reason against the passions has made a division of those who would
have peace into two sects. The first would renounce their passions, and become gods; the
others would renounce reason, and become brute beasts. (Des Barreaux.) But neither can do
so, and reason still remains, to condemn the vileness and unjustice of the passions, and
to trouble the repose of those who abandon themselves to them; and the passions keep
always alive in those who would renounce them.
414
Men are so necessarily mad, that not to be mad would amount to another form of madness.
415
The nature of man may be viewed in two ways: the one according to its end, and then he
is great and incomparable; the other according to the multitude, just as we judge of the
nature of the horse and the dog, popularly, by seeing its fleetness, et animum arcendi; 19
and then man is abject and vile. These are the two ways which make us judge of him
differently, and which occasion such disputes among philosophers.
[Footnote 19: "And instinct of guarding."]
For one denies the assumption of the other. One says, "He is not born for this
end, for all his actions are repugnant to it." The other says, "He forsakes his
end, when he does these base actions."
416
For Port Royal. Greatness and wretchedness. - Wretchedness being deduced from
greatness, and greatness from wretchedness, some have inferred man's wretchedness all the
more because they have taken his greatness as a proof of it, and others have inferred his
greatness with all the more force, because they have inferred it from his very
wretchedness. All that the one party has been able to say in proof of his greatness has
only served as an argument of his wretchedness to the others, because the greater our
fall, the more wretched we are, and vice versa. The one party is brought back to the other
in an endless circle, it being certain that in proportion as men possess light they
discover both the greatness and the wretchedness of man. In a word, man knows that he is
wretched. He is therefore wretched, because he is so; but he is really great because he
knows it.
417
This twofold nature of man is so evident that some have thought that we had two souls.
A single subject seemed to them incapable of such sudden variations from unmeasured
presumption to a dreadful dejection of heart.
418
It is dangerous to make man see too clearly his equality with the brutes without
showing him his greatness. It is also dangerous to make him see his greatness too clearly,
apart from his vileness. It is still more dangerous to leave him in ignorance of both. But
it is very advantageous to show him both. Man must not think that he is on a level either
with the brutes or with the angels, nor must he be ignorant of both sides of his nature;
but he must know both.
419
I will not allow man to depend upon himself, or upon another, to the end that being
without a resting place and without repose . . .
420
If he exalt himself, I humble him; if he humble himself, I exalt him; and I always
contradict him, till he understands that he is an incomprehensible monster.
421
I blame equally those who choose to praise man, those who choose to blame him, and
those who choose to amuse themselves; and I can only approve of those who seek with
lamentation.
422
It is good to be tired and wearied by the vain search after the true good, that we may
stretch out our arms to the Redeemer.
423
Contraries. After having shown the vileness and the greatness of man. - Let man now
know his value. Let him love himself, for there is in him a nature capable of good; but
let him not for this reason love the vileness which is in him. Let him despise himself,
for this capacity is barren; but let him not therefore despise this natural capacity. Let
him hate himself, let him love himself; he has within him the capacity of knowing the
truth and of being happy, but he possesses no truth, either constant or satisfactory.
I would then lead man to the desire of finding truth; to be free from passions, and
ready to follow it where he may find it, knowing how much his knowledge is obscured by the
passions. I would indeed that he should hate in himself the lust which determines his will
by itself, so that it may not blind him in making his choice, and may not hinder him when
he has chosen.
424
All these contradictions, which seem most to keep me from the knowledge of religion,
have led me most quickly to the true one.
Book: Section VII
Part I
Morality and Doctrine
425
Second part. - That man without faith cannot know the true good, nor justice.
All men seek happiness. This is without exception. Whatever different means they
employ, they all tend to this end. The cause of some going to war, and of others avoiding
it, is the same desire in both, attended with different views. The will never takes the
least step but to this object. This is the motive of every action of every man, even of
those who hang themselves.
And yet after such a great number of years, no one without faith has reached the point
to which all continually look. All complain, princes and subjects, noblemen and commoners,
old and young, strong and weak, learned and ignorant, healthy and sick, of all countries,
all times, all ages, and all conditions.
A trial so long, so continuous, and so uniform, should certainly convince us of our
inability to reach the good by our own efforts. But example teaches us little. No
resemblance is ever so perfect that there is not some slight difference; and hence we
expect that our hope will not be deceived on this occasion as before. And thus, while the
present never satisfies us, experience dupes us, and from misfortune to misfortune leads
us to death, their eternal crown.
What is it then that this desire and this inability proclaim to us, but that there was
once in man a true happiness of which there now remain to him only the mark and empty
trace, which he in vain tries to fill from all his surroundings, seeking from things
absent the help he does not obtain in things present? But these are all inadequate,
because the infinite abyss can only be filled by an infinite and immutable object, that is
to say, only by God Himself.
He only is our true good, and since we have forsaken Him, it is a strange thing that
there is nothing in nature which has not been serviceable in taking His place; the stars,
the heavens, earth, the elements, plants, cabbages, leeks, animals, insects, calves,
serpents, fever, pestilence, war, famine, vices, adultery, incest. And since man has lost
the true good, everything can appear equally good to him, even his own destruction, though
so opposed to God, to reason, and to the whole course of nature.
Some seek good in authority, others in scientific research, others in pleasure. Others,
who are in fact nearer the truth, have considered it necessary that the universal good,
which all men desire, should not consist in any of the particular things which can only be
possessed by one man, and which, when shared, afflict their possessor more by the want of
the part he has not, than they please him by the possession of what he has. They have
learned that the true good should be such as all can possess at once, without diminution
and without envy, and which no one can lose against his will. And their reason is that
this desire being natural to man, since it is necessarily in all, and that it is
impossible not to have it, they infer from it . . .
426
True nature being lost, everything becomes its own nature; as the true good being lost,
everything becomes its own true good.
427
Man does not know in what rank to place himself. He has plainly gone astray, and fallen
from his true place without being able to find it again. He seeks it anxiously and
unsuccessfully everywhere in impenetrable darkness.
428
If it is a sign of weakness to prove God by nature, do not despise Scripture; if it is
a sign of strength to have known these contradictions, esteem Scripture.
429
The vileness of man in submitting himself to the brutes, and in even worshipping them.
430
For Port Royal. The beginning, after having explained the incomprehensibility. - The
greatness and the wretchedness of man are so evident that the true religion must
necessarily teach us both that there is in man some great source of greatness, and a great
source of wretchedness. It must then give us a reason for these astonishing
contradictions.
In order to make man happy, it must prove to him that there is a God; that we ought to
love Him; that our true happiness is to be in Him, and our sole evil to be separated from
Him; it must recognise that we are full of darkness which hinders us from knowing and
loving Him; and that thus, as our duties compel us to love God, and our lusts turn us away
from Him, we are full of unrighteousness. It must give us an explanation of our opposition
to God and to our own good. It must teach us the remedies for these infirmities, and the
means of obtaining these remedies. Let us therefore examine all the religions of the
world, and see if there be any other than the Christian which is sufficient for this
purpose.
Shall it be that of the philosophers, who put forward as the chief good, the good which
is in ourselves? Is this the true good? Have they found the remedy for our ills? Is man's
pride cured by placing him on an equality with God? Have those who have made us equal to
the brutes, or the Mahomedans who have offered us earthly pleasures as the chief good even
in eternity, produced the remedy for our lusts? What religion then will teach us to cure
pride and lust? What religion will in fact teach us our good, our duties, the weakness
which turns us from them, the cause of this weakness, the remedies which can cure it, and
the means of obtaining these remedies?
All other religions have not been able to do so. Let us see what the wisdom of God will
do.
"Expect neither truth," she says, "nor consolation from men. I am she
who formed you, and who alone can teach you what you are. But you are now no longer in the
state in which I formed you. I created man holy, innocent, perfect. I filled him with
light and intelligence. I communicated to him my glory and my wonders. The eye of man saw
then the majesty of God. He was not then in the darkness which blinds him, nor subject to
mortality and the woes which afflict him. But he has not been able to sustain so great
glory without falling into pride. He wanted to make himself his own centre, and
independent of my help. He withdrew himself from my rule; and, on his making himself equal
to me by the desire of finding his happiness in himself, I abandoned him to himself. And
setting in revolt the creatures that were subject to him, I made them his enemies; so that
man is now become like the brutes, and so estranged from me that there scarce remains to
him a dim vision of his Author. So far has all his knowledge been extinguished or
disturbed! The senses, independent of reason, and often the masters of reason, have led
him into pursuit of pleasure. All creatures either torment or tempt him, and domineer over
him, either subduing him by their strength, or fascinating him by their charms, a tyranny
more awful and more imperious.
"Such is the state in which men now are. There remains to them some feeble
instinct of the happiness of their former state; and they are plunged in the evils of
their blindness and their lust, which have become their second nature.
"From this principle which I disclose to you, you can recognize the cause of those
contradictions which have astonished all men, and have divided them into parties holding
so different views. Observe now all the feelings of greatness and glory which the
experience of so many woes cannot stifle, and see if the cause of them must not be in
another nature."
For Port Royal to-morrow (Prosopopoea). - "It is in vain, O men, that you seek
within yourselves the remedy for your ills. All your light can only reach the knowledge
that not in yourselves will you find truth or good. The philosophers have promised you
that, and have been unable to do it. They neither know what is your true good, nor what is
your true state. How could they have given remedies for your ills, when they did not even
know them? Your chief maladies are pride, which takes you away from God, and lust, which
binds you to earth; and they have done nothing else but cherish one or other of these
diseases. If they gave you God as an end, it was only to administer to your pride; they
made you think that you are by nature like Him, and conformed to Him. And those who saw
the absurdity of this claim put you on another precipice, by making you understand that
your nature was like that of the brutes, and led you to seek your good in the lusts which
are shared by the animals. This is not the way to cure you of your unrighteousness, which
these wise men never knew. I alone can make you understand who you are. . . ."
Adam, Jesus Christ.
If you are united to God, it is by grace, not by nature. If you are humbled, it is by
penitence, not by nature.
Thus this double capacity. . . .
You are not in the state of your creation.
As these two states are open, it is impossible for you not to recognise them. Follow
your own feelings, observe yourselves, and see if you do not find the lively
characteristics of these two natures. Could so many contradictions be found in a simple
subject?
-Incomprehensible. - Not all that is incomprehensible ceases to exist. Infinite number.
An infinite space equal to a finite.
-Incredible that God should unite Himself to us. - This consideration is drawn only
from the sight of our vileness. But if you are quite sincere over it, follow it as far as
I have done, and recognise that we are indeed so vile that we are incapable in ourselves
of knowing if His mercy cannot make us capable of Him. For I would know how this animal,
who knows himself to be so weak, has the right to measure the mercy of God, and set limits
to it, suggested by his own fancy. He has so little knowledge of what God is, that he does
not know what he himself is, and, completely disturbed at the sight of his own state,
dares to say that God cannot make him capable of communion with Him.
But I would ask him if God demands anything else from him than the knowledge and love
of Him, and why, since his nature is capable of love and knowledge, he believes that God
cannot make Himself known and loved by him. Doubtless he knows at least that he exists,
and that he loves something. Therefore, if he sees anything in the darkness wherein he is,
and if he finds some object of his love among the things on earth, why, if God impart to
him some ray of His essence, will he not be capable of knowing and of loving Him in the
manner in which it shall please Him to communicate Himself to us? There must then be
certainly an intolerable presumption in this sort of arguments, although they seem founded
on an apparent humility, which is neither sincere nor reasonable, if it does not make us
admit that, not knowing of ourselves what we are, we can only learn it from God.
"I do not mean that you should submit your belief to me without reason, and I do
not aspire to overcome you by tyranny. In fact I do not claim to give you a reason for
everything. And to reconcile these contradictions, I intend to make you see clearly, by
convincing proofs, those divine signs in me, which may convince you of what I am, and may
gain authority for me by wonders and proofs which you cannot reject; so that you may then
believe without . . . the things which I teach you, since you will find no other ground
for rejecting them, except that you cannot know of yourselves if they are true or not.
"God has willed to redeem men, and to open salvation to those who seek it. But men
render themselves so unworthy of it, that it is right that God should refuse to some,
because of their obduracy, what He grants to others from a compassion which is not due to
them. If He had willed to overcome the obstinacy of the most hardened, He could have done
so by revealing Himself so manifestly to them that they could not have doubted of the
truth of His essence; as it will appear at the last day, with such thunders and such a
convulsion of nature, that the dead will rise again, and the blindest will see Him.
"It is not in this manner that He has willed to appear in His advent of mercy,
because, as so many make themselves unworthy of His mercy, He has willed to leave them in
the loss of the good which they do not want. It was not then right that He should appear
in a manner manifestly divine, and completely capable of convincing all men; but it was
also not right that He should come in so hidden a manner that He could not be known by
those who should sincerely seek Him. He has willed to make Himself quite recognisable by
those; and thus, willing to appear openly to those who seek Him with all their heart, and
to be hidden from those who flee from Him with all their heart, He so regulates the
knowledge of Himself that He has given signs of Himself, visible to those who seek Him,
and not to those who seek Him not. There is enough light for those who only desire to see,
and enough obscurity for those who have a contrary disposition."
431
No other religion has recognised that man is the most excellent creature. Some, which
have quite recognised the reality of his excellence, have considered as mean and
ungrateful the low opinions which men naturally have of themselves; and others, which have
thoroughly recognised how real is this vileness, have treated with proud ridicule those
feelings of greatness, which are equally natural to man.
"Lift your eyes to God," say the first; "see Him whom you resemble, and
who has created you to worship Him. You can make yourselves like unto Him; wisdom will
make you equal to Him, if you will follow it." "Raise your heads, free
men," says Epictetus. And others say, "Bend your eyes to the earth, wretched
worm that you are, and consider the brutes whose companion you are."
What then will man become? Will he be equal to God or the brutes? What a frightful
difference! What then shall we be? Who does not see from all this that man has gone
astray, that he has fallen from his place, that he anxiously seeks it, that he cannot find
it again? And who shall then direct him to it? The greatest men have failed.
432
Scepticism is true; for, after all, men before Jesus Christ did not know where they
were, nor whether they were great or small. And those who have said the one or the other,
knew nothing about it, and guessed without reason and by chance. They also erred always in
excluding the one or the other.
Quod ergo ignorantes quaeritis, religio annuntiat vobis. 1
[Footnote 1: "What therefore ye ignorantly seek, religion proclaims to you."
- Cf. Acts, xvii. 23.]
433
After having understood the whole nature of man. - That a religion may be true, it must
have knowledge of our nature. It ought to know its greatness and littleness, and the
reason of both. What religion but the Christian has known this?
434
The chief arguments of the sceptics - I pass over the lesser ones - are that we have no
certainty of the truth of these principles apart from faith and revelation, except in so
far as we naturally perceive them in ourselves. Now this natural intuition is not a
convincing proof of their truth; since, having no certainty, apart from faith, whether man
was created by a good God, or by a wicked demon, or by chance, it is doubtful whether
these principles given to us are true, or false, or uncertain, according to our origin.
Again, no person is certain, apart from faith, whether he is awake or sleeps, seeing that
during sleep we believe as firmly as we do that we are awake; we believe that we see
space, figure, and motion; we are aware of the passage of time, we measure it; and in fact
we act as if we were awake. So that half of our life being passed in sleep, we have on our
own admission no idea of truth, whatever we may imagine. As all our intuitions are then
illusions, who knows whether the other half of our life, in which we think we are awake,
is not another sleep a little different from the former, from which we awake when we
suppose ourselves asleep?
[And who doubts that, if we dreamt in company, and the dreams chanced to agree, which
is common enough, and if we were always alone when awake, we should believe that matters
were reversed? In short, as we often dream that we dream, heaping dream upon dream, may it
not be that this half of our life, wherein we think ourselves awake, is itself only a
dream on which the others are grafted, from which we wake at death, during which we have
as few principles of truth and good as during natural sleep, these different thoughts
which disturb us being perhaps only illusions like the flight of time and the vain fancies
of our dreams?]
These are the chief arguments on one side and the other.
I omit minor ones, such as the sceptical talk against the impressions of custom,
education, manners, country, and the like. Though these influence the majority of common
folk, who dogmatise only on shallow foundations, they are upset by the least breath of the
sceptics. We have only to see their books if we are not sufficiently convinced of this,
and we shall very quickly become so, perhaps too much.
I notice the only strong point of the dogmatists, namely, that, speaking in good faith
and sincerely, we cannot doubt natural principles. Against this the sceptics set up in one
word the uncertainty of our origin, which includes that of our nature. The dogmatists have
been trying to answer this objection ever since the world began.
So there is open war among men, in which each must take a part, and side either with
dogmatism or scepticism. For he who thinks to remain neutral is above all a sceptic. This
neutrality is the essence of the sect; he who is not against them is essentially for them.
[In this appears their advantage.] They are not for themselves; they are neutral,
indifferent, in suspense as to all things, even themselves being no exception.
What then shall man do in this state? Shall he doubt everything? Shall he doubt whether
he is awake, whether he is being pinched, or whether he is being burned? Shall he doubt
whether he doubts? Shall he doubt whether he exists? We cannot go so far as that; and I
lay it down as a fact there never has been a real complete sceptic. Nature sustains our
feeble reason, and prevents it raving to this extent.
Shall he then say, on the contrary, that he certainly possesses truth he who, when
pressed ever so little, can show no title to it, and is forced to let go his hold?
What a chimera then is man! What a novelty! What a monster, what a chaos, what a
contradiction, what a prodigy! Judge of all things, imbecile worm of the earth; depositary
of truth, a sink of uncertainty and error; the pride and refuse of the universe!
Who will unravel this tangle? Nature confutes the sceptics, and reason confutes the
dogmatists. What then will you become, O men! who try to find out by your natural reason
what is your true condition? You cannot avoid one of these sects, nor adhere to one of
them.
Know then, proud man, what a paradox you are to yourself. Humble yourself, weak reason;
be silent, foolish nature; learn that man infinitely transcends man, and learn from your
Master your true condition, of which you are ignorant. Hear God.
For in fact, if man had never been corrupt, he would enjoy in his innocence both truth
and happiness with assurance; and if man had always been corrupt, he would have no idea of
truth or bliss. But, wretched as we are, and more so than if there were no greatness in
our condition, we have an idea of happiness, and cannot reach it. We perceive an image of
truth, and possess only a lie. Incapable of absolute ignorance and of certain knowledge,
we have thus been manifestly in a degree of perfection from which we have unhappily
fallen.
It is, however, an astonishing thing that the mystery furthest removed from our
knowledge, namely, that of the transmission of sin, should be a fact without which we can
have no knowledge of ourselves. For it is beyond doubt that there is nothing which more
shocks our reason than to say that the sin of the first man has rendered guilty those,
who, being so removed from this source, seem incapable of participation in it. This
transmission does not only seem to us impossible, it seems also very unjust. For what is
more contrary to the rules of our miserable justice than to damn eternally an infant
incapable of will, for a sin wherein he seems to have so little a share, that it was
committed six thousand years before he was in existence? Certainly nothing offends us more
rudely than this doctrine; and yet, without this mystery, the most incomprehensible of
all, we are incomprehensible to ourselves. The knot of our condition takes its twists and
turns in this abyss, so that man is more inconceivable without this mystery than this
mystery is inconceivable to man.
[Whence it seems that God, willing to render the difficulty of our existence
unintelligible to ourselves, has concealed the knot so high, or, better speaking, so low,
that we are quite incapable of reaching it; so that it is not by the proud exertions of
our reason, but by the simple submission of reason, that we can truly know ourselves.
These foundations, solidly established on the inviolable authority of religion, make us
know that there are two truths of faith equally certain: the one, that man, in the state
of creation, or in that of grace, is raised above all nature, made like unto God and
sharing in His divinity; the other, that in the state of corruption and sin, he is fallen
from this state and made like unto the beasts.
These two propositions are equally sound and certain. Scripture manifestly declares
this to us, when it says in some places: Deliciae meae esse cum filiis hominum. 2
Effundum spiritum meum super omnem carnem. 3 Dii estis, 4 &c.;
and in other places, Omnis caro foenum. 5 Homo assimilatus est jumentis
insipientibus, et similis factus est illis. 6 Dixi in corde meo de filiis
hominum. 7
[Footnote 2: Proverbs, viii. 31.]
[Footnote 3: Isaiah, xliv. 3; Joel, ii. 28.]
[Footnote 4: Psalms, lxxxii. 6.]
[Footnote 5: Isaiah, xl. 6.]
[Footnote 6: Psalms, xlix. 20.]
[Footnote 7: Ecclesiastes, iii. 18.]
Whence it clearly seems that man by grace is made like unto God, and a partaker in His
divinity, and that without grace he is like unto the brute beasts.]
435
Without this divine knowledge what could men do but either become elated by the inner
feeling of their past greatness which still remains to them, or become despondent at the
sight of their present weakness? For, not seeing the whole truth, they could not attain to
perfect virtue. Some considering nature as incorrupt, others as incurable, they could not
escape either pride or sloth, the two sources of all vice; since they cannot but either
abandon themselves to it through cowardice, or escape it by pride. For if they knew the
excellence of man, they were ignorant of his corruption; so that they easily avoided
sloth, but fell into pride. And if they recognised the infirmity of nature, they were
ignorant of its dignity; so that they could easily avoid vanity, but it was to fall into
despair. Thence arise the different schools of the Stoics and Epicureans, the Dogmatists,
Academicians, &c.
The Christian religion alone has been able to cure these two vices, not by expelling
the one through means of the other according to the wisdom of the world, but by expelling
both according to the simplicity of the Gospel. For it teaches the righteous that it
raises them even to a participation in divinity itself; that in this lofty state
theyestill carry the source of all corruption, which renders them during all their life
subject to error, misery, death, and sin; and it proclaims to the most ungodly that they
are capable of the grace of their Redeemer. So making those tremble whom it justifies, and
consoling those whom it condemns, religion so justly tempers fear with hope through that
double capacity of grace and of sin, common to all, that it humbles infinitely more than
reason alone can do, but without despair; and it exalts infinitely more than natural
pride, but without inflating: thus making it evident that alone being exempt from error
and vice, it alone fulfils the duty of instructing and correcting men.
Who then can refuse to believe and adore this heavenly light? For is it not clearer
than day that we perceive within ourselves ineffaceable marks of excellence? And is it not
equally true that we experience every hour the results of our deplorable condition? What
does this chaos and monstrous confusion proclaim to us but the truth of these two states,
with a voice so powerful that it is impossible to resist it?
436
Weakness. - Every pursuit of men is to get wealth; and they cannot have a title to show
that they possess it justly, for they have only that of human caprice; nor have they
strength to hold it securely. It is the same with knowledge, for disease takes it away. We
are incapable both of truth and goodness.
437
We desire truth, and find within ourselves only uncertainty.
We seek happiness, and find only misery and death.
We cannot but desire truth and happiness, and are incapable of certainty or happiness.
This desire is left to us, partly to punish us, partly to make us perceive wherefrom we
are fallen.
438
If man is not made for God, why is he only happy in God? If man is made for God, why is
he so opposed to God?
439
Nature corrupted. - Man does not act by reason, which constitutes his being.
Part II
440
The corruption of reason is shown by the existence of so many different and extravagant
customs. It was necessary that truth should come, in order that man should no longer dwell
within himself.
441
For myself, I confess that so soon as the Christian religion reveals the principle that
human nature is corrupt and fallen from God, that opens my eyes to see everywhere the mark
of this truth: for nature is such that she testifies everywhere, both within man and
without him, to a lost God and a corrupt nature.
442
Man's true nature, his true good, true virtue, and true religion, are things of which
the knowledge is inseparable.
443
Greatness, wretchedness. - The more light we have, the more greatness and the more
baseness we discover in man. Ordinary men - those who are more educated: philosophers,
they astonish ordinary men - Christians, they astonish philosophers.
Who will then be surprised to see that religion only makes us know profoundly what we
already know in proportion to our light?
444
This religion taught to her children what men have only been able to discover by their
greatest knowledge.
445
Original sin is foolishness to men, but it is admitted to be such. You must not then
reproach me for the want of reason in this doctrine, since I admit it to be without
reason. But this foolishness is wiser than all the wisdom of men, sapientius est
hominibus. For without this, what can we say that man is? His whole state depends on this
imperceptible point. And how should it be perceived by his reason, since it is a thing
against reason, and since reason, far from finding it out by her own ways, is averse to it
when it is presented to her?
446
Of original sin. Ample tradition of original sin according to the Jews. On the word in
Genesis, viii. 21. The imagination of man's heart is evil from his youth.
R. Moses Haddarschan: This evil leaven is placed in man from the time that he is
formed.
Massechet Succa: This evil leaven has seven names in Scripture. It is called evil, the
foreskin, uncleanness, and enemy, a scandal, a heart of stone, the north wind; all this
signifies the malignity which is concealed and impressed in the heart of man.
Midrasch Tillim says the same thing, and that God will deliver the good nature of man
from the evil.
This malignity is renewed every day against man, as it is written, Psalm xxxvii. 32:
"The wicked watcheth the righteous, and seeketh to slay him;" but God will not
abandon him. This malignity tries the heart of man in this life, and will accuse him in
the other. All this is found in the Talmud.
Midrasch Tillim on Psalm iv. 4: "Stand in awe and sin not." Stand in awe and
be afraid of your lust, and it will not lead you into sin. And on Psalm xxxvi. 1:
"The wicked has said within his own heart, Let not the fear of God be before
me." That is to say that the malignity natural to man has said that to the wicked.
Midrasch el Kohelet: "Better is a poor and wise child than an old and foolish king
who cannot foresee the future." The child is virtue, and the king is the malignity of
man. It is called king because all the members obey it, and old because it is in the human
heart from infancy to old age, and foolish because it leads man in the way of [perdition,
which he does not foresee. The same thing is in Midrasch Tillim.
Bereschist Rabba on Psalm xxxv. 10: "Lord, all my bones shall bless Thee, which
deliverest the poor from the tyrant." And is there a greater tyrant than the evil
leaven? And on Proverbs xxv. 21: "If thine enemy be hungry, give him bread to
eat." That is to say, if the evil leaven hunger, give him the bread of wisdom of
which it is spoken in Proverbs ix., and if he be thirsty, give him the water of which it
is spoken in Isaiah lv.
Midrasch Tillim says the same thing, and that Scripture in that passage, speaking of
the enemy, means the evil leaven; and that, in giving him that bread and that water, we
heap coals of fire on his head.
Midrasch el Kohelet on Ecclesiastes ix. 14: "A great king besieged a little
city." This great king is the evil leaven; the great bulwarks built against it are
temptations; and there has been found a poor wise man who has delivered it - that is to
say, virtue.
And on Psalm xli. I: "Blessed is he that considereth the poor."
And on Psalm lxxviii. 39: "The spirit passeth away, and cometh not again;"
whence some have erroneously argued against the immortality of the soul. But the sense is
that this spirit is the evil leaven, which accompanies man till death, and will not return
at the resurrection.
And on Psalm ciii. the same thing.
And on Psalm xvi.
Principles of Rabbinism: two Messiahs.
447
Will it be said that, as men have declared that righteousness has departed the earth,
they therefore knew of original sin? - Nemo ante obitum beatus est 8 - that is
to say, they knew death to be the beginning of eternal and essential happiness?
[Footnote 8: "No one is happy before he is dead."]
448
[Miton] sees well that nature is corrupt, and that men are averse to virtue; but he
does not know why they cannot fly higher.
449
Order. - After corruption to say: "It is right that all those who are in that
state should know it, both those who are content with it, and those who are not content
with it; but it is not right that all should see Redemption."
450
If we do not know ourselves to be full of pride, ambition, lust, weakness, misery, and
injustice, we are indeed blind. And if, knowing this we do not desire deliverance, what
can we say of a man. . . .?
What, then, can we have but esteem for a religion which knows so well the defects of
man, and desire for the truth of a religion which promises remedies so desirable?
451
All men naturally hate one another. They employ lust as far as possible in the service
of the public weal. But this is only a pretence and a false image of love; for at bottom
it is only hate.
452
To pity the unfortunate is not contrary to lust. On the contrary, we can quite well
give such evidence of friendship, and acquire the reputation of kindly feeling, without
giving anything.
453
From lust men have found and extracted excellent rules of policy, morality, and
justice; but in reality this vile root of man, this figmentum malum, 9 is only
covered, it is not taken away.
[Foonote 9: "Evil creation."]
454
Injustice. - They have not found any other means of satisfying lust without doing
injury to others.
455
Self is hateful. You, Miton, conceal it; you do not for that reason destroy it; you
are; then, always hateful.
- No; for in acting as we do to oblige everybody, we give no more occasion for hatred
of us. - That is true, if we only hated in self the vexation which comes to us from it.
But if I hate it because it is unjust, and because it makes itself the centre of
everything, I shall always hate it.
In a word, the Self has two qualities: it is unjust in itself since it makes itself the
centre of everything; it is inconvenient to others since it would enslave them; for each
self is the enemy, and would like to be the tyrant of all others. You take away its
inconvenience, but not its injustice, and so you do not render it lovable to those who
hate injustice; you render it lovable only to the unjust, who do not any longer find in it
an enemy. And thus you remain unjust, and can please only the unjust.
456
It is a perverted judgment that makes every one place himself above the rest of the
world, and prefer his own good, and the continuance of his own good fortune and life, to
that of the rest of the world.
457
Each one is all in all to himself; for he being dead, all is dead to him. Hence it
comes that each believes himself to be all in all to everybody. We must not judge of
nature by ourselves, but by it.
458
"All that is in the world is the lust of the flesh, or the lust of the eyes, or
the pride of life; libido sentiendi, libido sciendi, libido dominandi." Wretched is
the cursed land which these three rivers of fire enflame rather than water! Happy they
who, on these rivers, are not overwhelmed nor carried away, but are immovably fixed, not
standing, but seated on a low and secure base, whence they do not rise before the light,
but, having rested in peace, stretch out their hands to Him, who must lift them up, and
make them stand upright and firm in the porches of the holy Jerusalem! There pride can no
longer assail them nor cast them down; and yet they weep, not to see all those perishable
things swept away by the torrents, but at the remembrance of their loved country, the
heavenly Jerusalem, which they remember without ceasing during their prolonged exile.
459
The rivers of Babylon rush and fall and sweep away.
O holy Sion, where all is firm and nothing falls!
We must sit upon the waters, not under them or in them, but on them, and not standing
but seated; being seated to be humble, and being above them to be secure. But we shall
stand in the porches of Jerusalem.
Let us see if this pleasure is stable or transitory; if it pass away, it is a river of
Babylon.
460
The lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, pride, &c. - There are three orders of
things: the flesh, the spirit, and the will. The carnal are the rich and kings; they have
the body as their object. Inquirers and scientists; they have the mind as their object.
The wise; they have righteousness as their object.
God must reign over all, and all men must be brought back to Him. In things of the
flesh lust reigns specially; in intellectual matters, inquiry specially; in wisdom, pride
specially. Not that a man cannot boast of wealth or knowledge, but it is not the place for
pride; for in granting to a man that he is learned, it is easy to convince him that he is
wrong to be proud. The proper place for pride is in wisdom, for it cannot be granted to a
man that he has made himself wise, and that he is wrong to be proud; for that is right.
Now God alone gives wisdom, and that is why Qui gloriatur, in Domino glorietur. 10
[Footnote 10: I Corinthians, i. 31.]
461
The three lusts have made three sects; and the philosophers have done no other thing
than follow one of the three lusts.
462
Search for the true good. - Ordinary men place the good in fortune and external goods,
or at least in amusement. Philosophers have shown the vanity of all this, and have placed
it where they could.
463
[Against the philosophers who believe in God without Jesus Christ.]
Philosophers. - They believe that God alone is worthy to be loved and admired; and they
have desired to be loved and admired of men, and do not know their own corruption. If they
feel full of feelings of love and adoration, and find therein their chief delight, very
well, let them think themselves good. But if they find themselves averse to Him, if they
have no inclination but the desire to establish themselves in the esteem of men, and if
their whole perfection consists only in making men - but without constraint - find their
happiness in loving them, I declare that this perfection is horrible. What! they have
known God, and have not desired solely that men should love Him, but that men should stop
short at them! They have wanted to be the object of the voluntary delight of men.
464
Philosophers. - We are full of things which take us out of ourselves.
Our instinct makes us feel that we must seek our happiness outside ourselves. Our
passions impel us outside, even when no objects present themselves to excite them.
External objects tempt us of themselves, and call to us, even when we are not thinking of
them. And thus philosophers have said in vain, "Retire within yourselves, you will
find your good there." We do not believe them, and those who believe them are the
most empty and the most foolish.
465
The Stoics say, "Retire within yourselves; it is there you will find your
rest." And that is not true.
Others say, "Go out of yourselves; seek happiness in amusement." And this is
not true. Illness comes.
Happiness is neither without us nor within us. It is in God, both without us and within
us.
466
Had Epictetus seen the way perfectly, he would have said to men, "You follow a
wrong road"; he shows that there is another, but he does not lead to it. It is the
way of willing what God wills. Jesus Christ alone leads to it: Via, veritas. 11
[Footnote 11: John, xiv. 6.]
The vices of Zeno himself.
467
The reason of effects. - Epictetus. Those who say, "You have a headache;"
this is not the same thing. We are assured of health, and not of justice; and in fact his
own was nonsense.
And yet he believed it demonstrable, when he said, "It is either in our power or
it is not." But he did not perceive that it is not in our power to regulate the
heart, and he was wrong to infer this from the fact that there were some Christians.
468
No other religion has proposed to men to hate themselves. No other religion then can
please those who hate themselves, and who seek a Being truly lovable. And these, if they
had never heard of the religion of a God humiliated, would embrace it at once.
469
I feel that I might not have been; for the Ego consists in my thoughts. Therefore I,
who think, would not have been, if my mother had been killed before I had life. I am not
then a necessary being. In the same way I am not eternal or infinite; but I see plainly
that there exists in nature a necessary Being, eternal and infinite.
470
"Had I seen a miracle," say men, "I should become converted." How
can they be sure they would do a thing of the nature of which they are ignorant? They
imagine that this conversion consists in a worship of God, which is like commerce, and in
a communion such as they picture to themselves. True religion consists in annihilating
self before that Universal Being, whom we have so often provoked, and who can justly
destroy us at any time; in recognising that we can do nothing without Him, and have
deserved nothing from Him but His displeasure. It consists in knowing that there is an
unconquerable opposition between us and God, and that without a mediator twere can be no
communion with Him.
471
It is unjust that men should attach themselves to me, even though they do it with
pleasure and voluntarily. I should deceive those in whom I had created this desire; for I
am not the end of any, and I have not the wherewithal to satisfy them. Am I not about to
die? And thus the object of their attachment will die. Therefore, as I would be blamable
in causing a falsehood to be believed, though I should employ gentle persuasion, though it
should be believed with pleasure, and though it should give me pleasure; even so I am
blamable in making myself loved, and if I attract persons to attach themselves to me. I
ought to warn those who are ready to consent to a lie, that they ought not to believe it,
whatever advantage comes to me from it; and likewise that they ought not to attach
themselves to me; for they ought to spend their life and their care in pleasing God, or in
seeking Him.
472
Self-will will never be satisfied, though it should have command of all it would; but
we are satisfied from the moment we renounce it. Without it we cannot be discontented;
with it we cannot be content.
473
Let us imagine a body full of thinking members.
474
Members. To commence with that. - To regulate the love which we owe to ourselves, we
must imagine a body full of thinking members, for we are members of the whole, and must
see how each member should love itself, &c. . . .
475
If the feet and the hands had a will of their own, they could only be in their order in
submitting this particular will to the primary will which governs the whole body. Apart
from that, they are in disorder and mischief; but in willing only the good of the body,
they accomplish their own good.
476
We must love God only and hate self only.
If the foot had always been ignorant that it belonged to the body, and that there was a
body on which it depended, if it had only had the knowledge and the love of self, and if
it came to know that it belonged to a body on which it depended, what regret, what shame
for its past life, for having been useless to the body which inspired its life, which
would have annihilated it if it had rejected it and separated it from itself, as it kept
itself apart from the body! What prayers for its preservation in it! And with what
submission would it allow itself to be governed by the will which rules the body, even to
consenting, if necessary, to be cut off, or it would lose its character as member! For
every member must be quite willing to perish for the body, for which alone the whole is.
Part III
477
It is false that we are worthy of the love of others; it is unfair that we should
desire it. If we were born reasonable and impartial, knowing ourselves and others, we
should not give this bias to our will. However, we are born with it; we are therefore born
unjust, for all tends to self. This is contrary to all order. We must consider the general
good; and the propensity to self is the beginning of all disorder, in war, in politics, in
economy, and in the particular body of man. The will is therefore depraved.
If the members of natural and civil communities tend towards the weal of the body, the
communities themselves ought to look to another more general body of which they are
members. We ought therefore to look to the whole. We are therefore born unjust and
depraved.
478
When we want to think of God, is there nothing which turns us away, and tempts us to
think of something else? All this is bad, and is born in us.
479
If there is a God, we must love Him only, and not the creatures of a day. The reasoning
of the ungodly in the Book of Wisdom is only based upon the non-existence of God. "On
that supposition," say they, "let us take delight in the creatures." That
is the worst that can happen. But if there were a God to love, they would not have come to
this conclusion, but to quite the contrary. And this is the conclusion of the wise:
"There is a God, let us therefore not take delight in the creatures."
Therefore all that incites us to attach ourselves to the creatures is bad; since it
prevents us from serving God if we know Him, or from seeking Him if we know Him not. Now
we are full of lust. Therefore we are full of evil; therefore we ought to hate ourselves
and all that excites us to attach ourselves to any other object than God only.
480
To make the members happy, they must have one will, and submit it to the body.
481
The examples of the noble deaths of the Lacedaemonians and others scarce touch us. For
what good is it to us? But the example of the death of the martyrs touches us; for they
are "our members." We have a common tie with them. Their resolution can form
ours, not only by example, but because it has perhaps deserved ours. There is nothing of
this in the examples of the heathen. We have no tie with them; as we do not become rich by
seeing a stranger who is so, but in fact by seeing a father or a husband who is so.
482
Morality. - God having made the heavens and the earth, which do not feel the happiness
of their being, He has willed to make beings who should know it, and who should compose a
body of thinking members. For our members do not feel the happiness of their union, of
their wonderful intelligence, of the care which nature has taken to infuse into them
minds, and to make them grow and endure. How happy they would be if they saw and felt it!
But for this they would need to have intelligence to know it, and good-will to consent to
that of the universal soul. But if, having received intelligence, they employed it to
retain nourishment for themselves without allowing it to pass to the other members, they
would be not only unjust, but also miserable, and would hate rather than love themselves;
their blessedness, as well as their duty, consisting in their consent to the guidance of
the whole soul to which they belong, which loves them better than they love themselves.
483
To be a member is to have neither life, being, nor movement, except through the spirit
of the body, and for the body.
The separate member, seeing no longer the body to which it belongs, has only a
perishing and dying existence. Yet it believes it is a whole, and seeing not the body on
which it depends, it believes it depends only on self, and desires to make itself both
centre and body. But not having in itself a principle of life, it only goes astray, and is
astonished in the uncertainty of its being; perceiving in fact that it is not a body, and
still not seeing that it is a member of a body. In short, when it comes to know itself, it
has returned as it were to its own home, and loves itself only for the body. It deplores
its past wanderings.
It cannot by its nature love any other thing, except for itself and to subject it to
self, because each thing loves itself more than all. But in loving the body, it loves
itself, because it only exists in it, by it, and for it. Qui adhaeret Deo unus spiritus
est. 12
[Footnote 12: I Corinthians, vi. 17.]
The body loves the hand; and the hand, if it had a will, should love itself in the same
way as it is loved by the soul. All love which goes beyond this is unfair.
Adhaerens Deo unus spiritus est. We love ourselves, because we are members of Jesus
Christ. We love Jesus Christ, because He is the body of which we are members. All is one,
one is in the other, like the Three Persons.
484
Two laws suffice to rule the whole Christian Republic better than all the laws of
statecraft.
485
The true and only virtue then is to hate self (for we are hateful on account of lust),
and to seek a truly lovable being to love. But as we cannot love what is outside
ourselves, we must love a being who is in us, and is not ourselves; and that is true of
each and all men. Now only the Universal Being is such. The kingdom of God is within us;
the universal good is within us, is ourselves - and not ourselves.
486
The dignity of man in his innocence consisted in using and having dominion over the
creatures, but now in separating himself from them, and subjecting himself to them.
487
Every religion is false, which as to its faith does not worship one God as the origin
of everything, and which as to its morality does not love one only God as the object of
everything.
488
. . . But it is impossible that God should ever be the end, if He is not the beginning.
We lift our eyes on high, but lean upon the sand; and the earth will dissolve, and we
shall fall whilst looking at the heavens.
489
If there is one sole source of everything, there is one sole end of everything;
everything through Him, everything for Him. The true religion then must teach us to
worship Him only, and to love Him only. But as we find ourselves unable to worship what we
know not, and to love any other object but ourselves, the religion which instructs us in
these duties must instruct us also of this inability, and teach us also the remedies for
it. It teaches us that by one man all was lost, and the bond broken between God and us,
and that by one man the bond is renewed.
We are born so averse to this love of God, and it is so necessary that we must be born
guilty, or God would be unjust.
490
Men, not being accustomed to form merit, but only to recompense it where they find it
formed, judge of God by themselves.
491
The true religion must have as a characteristic the obligation to love God. This is
very just, and yet no other religion has commanded this; ours has done so. It must also be
aware of human lust and weakness; ours is so. It must have adduced remedies for this; one
is prayer. No other religion has asked of God to love and follow Him.
492
He who hates not in himself his self-love, and that instinct which leads him to make
himself God, is indeed blinded. Who does not see that there is nothing so opposed to
justice and truth? For it is false that we deserve this, and it is unfair and impossible
to attain it, since all demand the same thing. It is then a manifest injustice which is
innate in us, of which we cannot get rid and of which we must get rid.
Yet no religion has indicated that this was a sin; or that we were born in it; or that
we were obliged to resist it; or has thought of giving us remedies for it.
493
The true religion teaches our duties; our weaknesses, pride, and lust; and the
remedies, humility and mortification.
494
The true religion must teach greatness and misery; must lead to the esteem and contempt
of self, to love and to hate.
495
If it is an extraordinary blindness to live without investigating what we are, it is a
terrible one to live an evil life, while believing in God.
496
Experience makes us see an enormous difference between piety and goodness.
497
Against those who, trusting to the mercy of God, live heedlessly, without doing good
works. - As the two sources of our sins are pride and sloth, God has revealed to us two of
His attributes to cure them, mercy and justice. The property of justice is to humble
pride, however holy may be our works, et non intres in judicium, &c.; 13 and the property of mercy is to combat sloth by exhorting to good works, according to that
passage: "The goodness of God leadeth to repentance," and that other of the
Ninevites: "Let us do penance to see if peradventure He will pity us." And thus
mercy is so far from authorising slackness, that it is on the contrary the quality which
formally attacks it; so that instead of saying, "If there were no mercy in God we
should have to make every kind of effort after virtue," we must say, on the contrary,
that it is because there is mercy in God, that we must make every kind of effort.
[Footnote 13: Psalms, cxliii. 2.]
498
It is true there is difficulty in entering into godliness. But this difficulty does not
arise from the religion which begins in us, but from the irreligion which is still there.
If our senses were not opposed to penitence, and if our corruption were not opposed to the
purity of God, there would be nothing in this painful to us. We suffer only in proportion
as the vice which is natural to us resists supernatural grace. Our heart feels torn
asunder between these opposed efforts. But it would be very unfair to impute this violence
to God, who is drawing us on, instead of to the world, which is holding us back. It is as
a child, which a mother tears from the arms of robbers, in the pain it suffers, should
love the loving and legitimate violence of her who procures its liberty, and detest only
the impetuous and tyrannical violence of those who detain it unjustly. The most cruel war
which God can make with men in this life is to leave them without that war which He came
to bring. "I came to send war," He says, "and to teach them of this war. I
came to bring fire and the sword." Before Him the world lived in this false peace.
499
External works. - There is nothing so perilous as what pleases God and man. For those
states, which please God and man, have one property which pleases God, and another which
pleases men; as the greatness of Saint Theresa. What pleased God was her deep humility in
the midst of her revelations; what pleased men was her light. And so we torment ourselves
to imitate her discourses, thinking to imitate her conditions, and not so much to love
what God loves, and to put ourselves in the state which God loves.
It is better not to fast, and be thereby humbled, than to fast and be self-satisfied
therewith. The Pharisee and the Publican.
What use will memory be to me, if it can alike hurt and help me, and all depends upon
the blessing of God, who gives only to things done for Him, according to His rules and in
His ways, the manner being thus as important as the thing, and perhaps more; since God can
bring forth good out of evil, and without God we bring forth evil out of good?
500
The meaning of the words, good and evil.
501
First step: to be blamed for doing evil, and praised for doing good.
Second step: to be neither praised nor blamed.
502
Abraham took nothing for himself, but only for his servants. So the righteous man takes
for himself nothing of the world, nor of the applause of the world, but only for his
passions, which he uses as their master, saying to the one, "Go," and to
another, "Come." Sub te erit appetitus tuus. 14 The passions thus
subdued are virtues. Even God attributes to Himself avarice, jealousy, anger; and these
are virtues as well as kindness, pity, constancy, which are also passions. We must employ
them as slaves, and, leaving to them their food, prevent the soul from taking any of it.
For, when the passions become masters, they are vices; and they give their nutriment to
the soul, and the soul nourishes itself upon it, and is poisoned.
[Footnote 14: Genesis, iv. 7.]
503
Philosophers have consecrated the vices by placing them in God Himself. Christians have
consecrated the virtues.
504
The just man acts by faith in the least things; when he reproves his servants, he
desires their conversion by the Spirit of God, and prays God to correct them; and he
expects as much from God as from his own reproofs, and prays God to bless his corrections.
And so in all his other actions he proceeds with the Spirit of God; and his actions
deceive us by reason of the . . . or suspension of the Spirit of God in him; and he
repents in his affliction.
505
All things can be deadly to us, even the things made to serve us; as in nature walls
can kill us, and stairs can kill us, if we do not walk circumspectly.
The least movement affects all nature; the entire sea changes because of a rock. Thus
in grace, the least action affects everything by its consequences; therefore everything is
important.
In each action we must look beyond the action at our past, present, and future state,
and at others whom it affects, and see the relations of all those things. And then we
shall be very cautious.
506
Let God not impute to us our sins, that is to say, all the consequences and results of
our sins, which are dreadful, even those of the smallest faults, if we wish to follow them
out mercilessly!
507
The spirit of grace; the hardness of the heart; external circumstances.
508
Grace is indeed needed to turn a man into a saint; and he who doubts it does not know
what a saint or a man is.
509
Philosophers. - A fine thing to cry to a man who does not know himself, that he should
come of himself to God! And a fine thing to say so to a man who does know himself!
510
Man is not worthy of God, but he is not incapable of being made worthy.
It is unworthy of God to unite Himself to wretched man; but it is not unworthy of God
to pull him out of his misery.
511
If we would say that man is too insignificant to deserve communion with God, we must
indeed be very great to judge of it.
512
It is, in peculiar phraseology, wholly the body of Jesus Christ, but it cannot be said
to be the whole body of Jesus Christ. The union of two things without change does not
enable us to say that one becomes the other; the soul thus being united to the body, the
fire to the timber, without change. But change is necessary to make the form of the one
become the form of the other; thus the union of the Word to man. Because my body without
my soul would not make the body of a man; therefore my soul united to any matter
whatsoever will make my body. It does not distinguish the necessary condition from the
sufficient condition; the union is necessary, but not sufficient. The left arm is not the
right.
Impenetrability is a property of matter.
Identity of number in regard to the same time requires the identity of matter.
Thus if God united my soul to a body in China, the same body, idem numero, would be in
China.
The same river which runs there is idem numero as that which runs at the same time in
China.
513
Why God has established prayer.
1. To communicate to His creatures the dignity of causality.
2. To teach us from whom our virtue comes.
3. To make us deserve other virtues by work.
But to keep His own pre-eminence, He grants prayer to whom He pleases.
Objection: But we believe that we hold prayer of ourselves.
This is absurd; for since, though having faith, we cannot have virtues, how should we
have faith? Is there a greater distance between infidelity and faith than between faith
and virtue?
Merit. This word is ambiguous.
Meruit habere Redemptorem. 15
Meruit tam sacra membra tangere. 16
Digno tam sacra membra tangere. 17
Non sum dignus. 18
Qui manducat indignus. 19
Dignus est accipere. 20
Dignare me. 21
[Footnote 15: "He deserved to have a Redeemer."]
[Footnote 16: "He deserved to touch members so sacred."]
[Footnote 17: "I deem him worthy to touch, etc."]
[Footnote 18: "I am not worthy." - Luke, vii. 6.]
[Footnote 19: "He who unworthy eats." - 1 Corinthians, xi. 27.]
[Footnote 20: "He is worthy to receive." - Revelation, iv. 11.]
[Footnote 21: "To deem me worthy."]
God is only bound according to His promises. He has promised to grant justice to
prayers; He has never promised prayer only to the children of promise.
Saint Augustine has distinctly said that strength would be taken away from the
righteous. But it is by chance that he said it; for it might have happened that the
occasion of saying it did not present itself. But his principles make us see that when the
occasion for it presented itself, it was impossible that he should not say it, or that he
should say anything to the contrary. It is then rather that he was forced to say it, when
the occasion presented itself, than that he said it, when the occasion presented itself,
the one being of necessity, the other of chance. But the two are all that we can ask.
514
"Work out your own salvation with fear."
Proofs of prayer. Petenti dabitur. 22
[Footnote 22: Matthew, vii. 7.]
Therefore it is in our power to ask. On the other hand, there is God. So it is not in
our power, since the obtaining of (the grace) to pray to Him is not in our power. For
since salvation is not in us, and the obtaining of such grace is from Him, prayer is not
in our power.
The righteous man should then hope no more in God, for he ought not to hope, but to
strive to obtain what he wants.
Let us conclude then that, since man is now unrighteous since the first sin, and God is
unwilling that he should thereby not be estranged from Him, it is only by a first effect
that he is not estranged.
Therefore, those who depart from God have not this first effect without which they are
not estranged from God, and those who do not depart from God have this first effect.
Therefore, those whom we have seen possessed for some time of grace by this first effect,
cease to pray, for want of this first effect.
Then God abandons the first in this sense.
515
The elect will be ignorant of their virtues, and the outcast of the greatness of their
sins: "Lord, when saw we Thee an hungered, thirsty?" &c.
516
Romans, iii. 27. Boasting is excluded. By what law? Of works? nay, but my faith. Then
faith is not within our power like the deeds of the law, and it is given to us in another
way.
517
Comfort yourselves. It is not from yourselves that you should expect grace; but, on the
contrary, it is in expecting nothing from yourselves, that you must hope for it.
518
Every condition, and even the martyrs, have to fear, according to Scripture.
The greatest pain of purgatory is the uncertainty of the judgment. Deus absconditus. 23
[Footnote 23: "A hidden God."]
Part IV
519
John, viii. 30. Multi crediderunt in eum. Dicebat ergo Jesus: "Si manseritis . . .
vere mei discipuli eritis, et veritas liberabit vos." Responderunt: "Semen
Abrahae sumus, et nemini servimus unquam."
There is a great difference between disciples and true disciples. We recognise them by
telling them that the truth will make them free; for if they answer that they are free,
and that it is in their power to come out of slavery to the devil, they are indeed
disciples, but not true disciples.
520
The law has not destroyed nature, but has instructed it; grace has not destroyed the
law, but has made it act. Faith received at baptism is the source of the whole life of
Christians and of the converted.
521
Grace will always be in the world, and nature also; so that the former is in some sort
natural. And thus there will always be Pelagians, and always Catholics, and always strife;
because the first birth makes the one, and the grace of the second birth the other.
522
The law imposed what it did not give. Grace gives what it imposes.
523
All faith consists in Jesus Christ and in Adam, and all morality in lust and in grace.
524
There is no doctrine more appropriate to man than this, which teaches him his double
capacity of receiving and of losing grace, because of the double peril to which he is
exposed, of despair or of pride.
525
The philosophers did not prescribe feelings suitable to the two states.
They inspired feelings of pure greatness, and that is not man's state.
They inspired feelings of pure littleness, and that is not man's state.
There must be feelings of humility, not from nature, but from penitence, not to rest in
them, but to go on to greatness. There must be feelings of greatness, not from merit, but
from grace, and after having passed through humiliation.
526
Misery induces despair, pride induces presumption. The Incarnation shows man the
greatness of his misery by the greatness of the remedy which he required.
527
The knowledge of God without that of man's misery causes pride. The knowledge of man's
misery without that of God causes despair. The knowledge of Jesus Christ constitutes the
middle course, because in Him we find both God and our misery.
528
Jesus Christ is a God whom we approach without pride, and before whom we humble
ourselves without despair.
529
. . . Not a degradation which renders us incapable of good, nor a holiness exempt from
evil.
530
A person told me one day that on coming from confession he felt great joy and
confidence. Another told me that he remained in fear. Whereupon I thought that these two
together would make one good man, and that each was wanting in that he had not the feeling
of the other. The same often happens in other things.
531
He who knows the will of his master will be beaten with more blows, because of the
power he has by his knowledge. Qui justus est, justificetur adhuc, 24 because
of the power he has by justice. From him who has received most, will the greatest
reckoning be demanded, because of the power he has by this help.
[Footnote 24: Revelation, xxii. II.]
532
Scripture has provided passages of consolation and of warning for all conditions.
Nature seems to have done the same thing by her two infinites, natural and moral; for
we shall always have the higher and the lower, the more clever and the less clever, the
most exalted and the meanest, in order to humble our pride, and exalt our humility.
533
Comminutum cor 25 (Saint Paul). This is the Christian character. Alba has
named you, I know you no more (Corneille). That is the inhuman character. The human
character is the opposite.
[Footnote 25: "A broken heart."]
534
There are only two kinds of men: the righteous, who believe themselves sinners; the
rest, sinners, who believe themselves righteous.
535
We owe a great debt to those who point out faults. For they mortify us. They teach us
that we have been despised. They do not prevent our being so in the future; for we have
many other faults for which we may be despised. They prepare for us the exercise of
correction and freedom from fault.
536
Man is so made that by continually telling him he is a fool he believes it, and by
continually telling it to himself he makes himself believe it. For man holds an inward
talk with his self alone, which it behoves him to regulate well: Corrumpunt mores bonos
colloquia prava. 26 We must keep silent as much as possible, and talk with
ourselves only of God, whom we know to be true; and thus we convince ourselves of the
truth.
[Footnote 26: I Corinthians, xv. 33.]
537
Christianity is strange. It bids man recognise that he is vile, even abominable, and
bids him desire to be like God. Without such a counterpoise, this dignity would make him
horribly vain, or this humiliation would make him terribly abject.
538
With how little pride does a Christian believe himself united to God! With how little
humiliation does he place himself on a level with the worms of earth!
A glorious manner to welcome life and death, good and evil!
539
What difference in point of obedience is there between a soldier and a Carthusian monk?
For both are equally under obedience and dependent, both engage in equally painful
exercises. But the soldier always hopes to command, and never attains this, for even
captains and princes are ever slaves and dependents; still he ever hopes and ever works to
attain this. Whereas the Carthusian monk makes a vow to be always dependent. So they do
not differ in their perpetual thraldom, in which both of them always exist, but in the
hope, which one always has, and the other never.
540
The hope which Christians have of possessing an infinite good is mingled with real
enjoyment as well as with fear; for it is not as with those who should hope for a kingdom,
of which they, being subjects, would have nothing; but they hope for holiness, for freedom
from injustice, and they have something of this.
541
None is so happy as a true Christian, nor so reasonable, virtuous, or amiable.
542
The Christian religion alone makes man altogether lovable and happy. In honesty, we
cannot perhaps be altogether lovable and happy.
543
Preface. - The metaphysical proofs of God are so remote from the reasoning of men, and
so complicated, that they make little impression; and if they should be of service to
some, it would be only during the moment that they see such demonstration; but an hour
afterwards they fear they have been mistaken.
Quod curiositate cognoverunt superbia amiserunt. 27
[Footnote 27: "What they knew by searching they have lost by pride." - St.
Augustine.]
This is the result of the knowledge of God obtained without Jesus Christ; it is
communion without a mediator with the God whom they have known without a mediator. Whereas
those who have known God by a mediator know their own wretchedness.
544
The God of the Christians is a God who makes the soul feel that He is her only good,
that her only rest is in Him, that her only delight is in loving Him; and who makes her at
the same time abhor the obstacles which keep her back, and prevent her from loving God
with all her strength. Self-love and lust, which hinder us, are unbearable to her. Thus
God makes her feel that she has this root of self-love which destroys her, and which He
alone can cure.
545
Jesus Christ did nothing but teach men that they love themselves, that they were
slaves, blind, sick, wretched, and sinners; that He must deliver them, enlighten, bless,
and heal them; that this would be effected by hating self, and by following Him through
suffering and the death on the cross.
546
Without Jesus Christ man must be in vice and misery; with Jesus Christ man is free from
vice and misery; in Him is all our virtue and all our happiness. Apart from Him there is
but vice, misery, darkness, death, despair.
547
We know God only by Jesus Christ. Without this mediator all communion with God is taken
away; through Jesus Christ we know God. All those who have claimed to know God, and to
prove Him without Jesus Christ, have had only weak proofs. But in proof of Jesus Christ we
have the prophecies, which are solid and palpable proofs. And these prophecies, being
accomplished and proved true by the event, mark the certainty of these truths, and
therefore the divinity of Christ. In Him then, and through Him, we know God. Apart from
Him, and without the Scripture, without original sin, without a necessary Mediator
promised and come, we cannot absolutely prove God, nor teach right doctrine and right
morality. But through Jesus Christ, and in Jesus Christ, we prove God, and teach morality
and doctrine. Jesus Christ is then the true God of men.
But we know at the same time our wretchedness; for this God is none other than the
Saviour of our wretchedness. So we can only know God well by knowing our iniquities.
Therefore those who have known God, without knowing their wretchedness, have not glorified
Him, but have glorified themselves. Quia . . . non cognovit per sapientiam . . . placuit
Deo per stultitiam praedicationis salvos facere. 28
[Footnote 28: I Corinthians, i. 21.]
548
Not only do we know God by Jesus Christ alone, but we know ourselves only by Jesus
Christ. We know life and death only through Jesus Christ. Apart from Jesus Christ, we do
not know what is our life, nor our death, nor God, nor ourselves.
Thus without the Scripture, which has Jesus Christ alone for its object, we know
nothing, and see only darkness and confusion in the nature of God, and in our own nature.
549
It is not only impossible but useless to know God without Jesus Christ. They have not
departed from Him, but approached; they have not humbled themselves, but . . .
Quo quisque optimus est, pessimus, si hoc ipsum, quod optimus est, adscribat sibi. 29
[Footnote 29: "The quality which makes any one best makes him worst, if he claims
it for himself."]
550
I love poverty because He loved it. I love riches because they afford me the means of
helping the very poor. I keep faith with everybody; I do not render evil to those who
wrong me, but I wish them a lot like mine, in which I receive neither evil nor good from
men. I try to be just, true, sincere, and faithful to all men; I have a tender heart for
those to whom God has more closely united me; and whether I am alone, or seen of men, I do
all my actions in the sight of God, who must judge of them, and to whom I have consecrated
them all.
These are my sentiments; and every day of my life I bless my Redeemer, who has
implanted them in me, and who, of a man full of weaknesses, of miseries, of lust, of
pride, and of ambition, has made a man free from all these evils by the power of His
grace, to which all the glory of it is due, as of myself I have only misery and error.
551
Dignior plagis quam osculis non timeo quia amo. 30
[Footnote 30: "Though I deserve blows rather than kisses, I do not fear, because I
love."]
552
The Sepulchre of Jesus Christ. - Jesus Christ was dead, but seen on the Cross. He was
dead, and hidden in the Sepulchre.
Jesus Christ was buried by the saints alone.
Jesus Christ wrought no miracle at the Sepulchre.
Only the saints entered it.
It is there, not on the Cross, that Jesus Christ takes a new life.
It is the last mystery of the Passion and the Redemption.
Jesus Christ had nowhere to rest on earth but in the Sepulchre.
His enemies only ceased to persecute Him at the Sepulchre.
553
The Mystery of Jesus. - Jesus suffers in His passion the torments which men inflict
upon Him; but in His agony He suffers the torments which He inflicts on Himself; turbare
semitipsum. 31 This is a suffering from no human, but an almighty hand, for He
must be almighty to bear it.
[Footnote 31: John, xi. 33.]
Jesus seeks some comfort at least in His three dearest friends, and they are asleep. He
prays them to bear with Him for a little, and they leave Him with entire indifference,
having so little compassion that it could not prevent their sleeping even for a moment.
And thus Jesus was left alone to the wrath of God.
Jesus is alone on the earth, without any one not only to feel and share His sufferings,
but even to know of it; He and Heaven were alone in that knowledge.
Jesus is in a garden, not of delight as the first Adam, where he lost himself and the
whole human race, but in one of agony, where He saved Himself and the whole human race.
He suffers this affliction and this desertion in the horror of night.
I believe that Jesus never complained but on this single occasion; but then He
complained as if He could no longer bear His extreme suffering. "My soul is
sorrowful, even unto death."
Jesus seeks companionship and comfort from men. This is the sole occasion in all His
life, as it seems to me. But He receives it not, for His disciples are asleep.
Jesus will be in agony even to the end of the world. We must not sleep during that
time.
Jesus, in the midst of this universal desertion, including that of His own friends
chosen to watch with Him, finding them asleep, is vexed because of the danger to which
they expose, not Him, but themselves; He cautions them for their own safety and their own
good, with a sincere tenderness for them during their ingratitude, and warns them that the
spirit is willing and the flesh weak.
Jesus, finding them still asleep, without being restrained by any consideration for
themselves or for Him, has the kindness not to waken them, and leaves them in repose.
Jesus prays, uncertain of the will of His Father, and fears death; but, when He knows
it, He goes forward to offer Himself to death. Eamus. Processit. 32 (John).
[Footnote 32: John, xviii. 4.]
Jesus asked of men and was not heard.
Jesus, while his disciples slept, wrought their salvation. He has wrought that of each
of the righteous while they slept, both in their nothingness before their birth, and in
their sins after their birth.
He prays only once that the cup pass away, and then with submission; and twice that it
come if necessary.
Jesus is weary.
Jesus, seeing all His friends asleep and all His enemies wakeful, commits Himself
entirely to His Father.
Jesus does not regard in Judas his enmity, but the order of God, which He loves and
admits, since He calls him friend.
Jesus tears Himself away from His disciples to enter into His agony; we must tear
ourselves away from our nearest and dearest to imitate Him.
Jesus being in agony and in the greatest affliction, let us pray longer.
We implore the mercy of God, not that He may leave us at peace in our vices, but that
He may deliver us from them.
If God gave us masters by His own hand, Oh! how necessary for us to obey them with a
good heart! Necessity and events follow infallibly.
- "Console thyself, thou wouldst not seek Me, if thou hadst not found Me.
"I though of thee in Mine agony, I have sweated such drops of blood for thee.
"It is tempting Me rather than proving thyself, to think if thou wouldst do such
and such a thing on an occasion which has not happened; I shall act in thee if it occur.
"Let thyself be guided by My rules; see how well I have led the Virgin and the
saints who have let Me act in them.
"The Father loves all that I do.
"Dost thou wish that it always cost Me the blood of My humanity, without thy
shedding tears?
"Thy conversion is My affair; fear not, and pray with confidence as for Me.
"I am present with thee by My Word in Scripture, by My Spirit in the Church and by
inspiration, by My power in the priests, by My prayer in the faithful.
"Physicians will not heal thee, for thou wilt die at last. But it is I who heal
thee, and make the body immortal.
"Suffer bodily chains and servitude, I deliver thee at present only from spiritual
servitude.
"I am more a friend to thee than such and such an one, for I have done for thee
more than they; they would not have suffered what I have suffered from thee, and they
would not have died for thee as I have done in the time of thine infidelities and
cruelties, and as I am ready to do, and do, among my elect and at the Holy Sacrament.
"If thou knewest thy sins, thou wouldst lose heart."
- I shall lose it then, Lord, for on Thy assurance I believe their malice.
- "No, for I, by whom thou learnest, can heal thee of them, and what I say to thee
is a sign that I will heal thee. In proportion to thy expiation of them, thou wilt know
them, and it will be said to thee: 'Behold, thy sins are forgiven thee.' Repent, then, for
thy hidden sins, and for the secret malice of those which thou knowest."
- Lord, I give Thee all.
- "I love thee more ardently than thou hast loved thine abominations ut immundus
pro luto. 33
[Footnote 33: "As foul with clay."]
"To Me be the glory, not to thee, worm of the earth.
"Ask thy confessor, when My own words are to thee occasion of evil, vanity, or
curiosity."
- I see in me depths of pride, curiosity and lust. There is no relation between me and
God nor Jesus Christ the Righteous. But He has been made sin for me; all Thy scourges are
fallen upon Him. He is more abominable than I, and, far from abhorring me, He holds
Himself honoured that I go to Him and succor Him.
But He has healed Himself, and still more so will He heal me.
I must add my wounds to His, and join myself to Him; and He will save me in saving
Himself. But this must not be postponed to the future.
Eritis sicut dii scientes bonum et malum. 34 Each one creates his god, when
judging. "This is good or bad;" and men mourn or rejoice too much at events.
[Footnote 34: Genesis, iii. 5.]
Do little things as though they were great, because of the majesty of Jesus Christ who
does them in us, and who lives our life; and do the greatest things as though they were
little and easy, because of His omnipotence.
554
It seems to me that Jesus Christ only allowed His wounds to be touched after his
resurrection: Noli me tangere. 35 We must unite ourselves only to His
sufferings.
[Footnote 35: John, xx. 17.]
At the Last Supper He gave Himself in communion as about to die; to the disciples at
Emmaus as risen from the dead; to the whole Church as ascended into heaven.
555
"Compare not thyself with others, but with Me. If thou dost not find Me in those
with whom thou comparest thyself, thou comparest thyself to one who is abominable. If thou
findest Me in them, compare thyself to Me. But whom wilt thou compare? Thyself, or Me in
thee? If it is thyself, it is one who is abominable. If it is I, thou comparest Me to
Myself. Now I am God in all.
"I speak to thee, and often counsel thee, because thy director cannot speak to
thee, for I do not want thee to lack a guide.
"And perhaps I do so at his prayers, and thus he leads thee without thy seeing it.
Thou wouldst not seek Me, if thou didst not possess Me.
"Be not therefore troubled."
Section VIII
The Fundamentals of the Christian Religion
556
Men blaspheme what they do not know. The Christian religion consists in two points. It
is of equal concern to men to know them, and it is equally dangerous to be ignorant of
them. And it is equally of God's mercy that He has given indications of both.
And yet they take occasion to conclude that one of these points does not exist, from
that which should have caused them to infer the other. The sages who have said there is
only one God have been persecuted, the Jews were hated, and still more the Christians.
They have seen by the light of nature that if there be a true religion on earth, the
course of all things must tend to it as to a centre.
The whole course of things must have for its object the establishment and the greatness
of religion. Men must have within them feelings suited to what religion teaches us. And,
finally, religion must so be the object and centre to which all things tend, that whoever
knows the principles of religion can give an explanation both of the whole nature of man
in particular, and of the whole course of the morld in general.
And on this ground they take occasion to revile the Christian religion, because they
misunderstand it. They imagine that it consists simply in the worship of a God considered
as great, powerful, and eternal; which is strictly deism, almost as far removed from the
Christian religion as atheism, which is its exact opposite. And thence they conclude that
this religion is not true, because they do not see that all things concur to the
establishment of this point, that God does not manifest Himself to men with all the
evidence which He could show.
But let them conclude what they will against deism, they will conclude nothing against
the Christian religion, which properly consists in the mystery of the Redeemer, who,
uniting in Himself the two natures, human and divine, has redeemed men from the corruption
of sin in order to reconcile them in His divine person to God.
The Christian religion then teaches men these two truths; that there is a God whom men
can know, and that there is a corruption in their nature which renders them unworthy of
Him. It is equally important to men to know both these points; and it is equally dangerous
for man to know God without knowing his own wretchedness, and to know his own wretchedness
without knowing the Redeemer who can free him from it. The knowledge of only one of these
points gives rise either to the pride of philosophers, who have known God, and not their
own wretchedness, or to the despair of atheists, who know their own wretchedness, but not
the Redeemer.
And, as it is alike necessary to man to know these two points, so is it alike merciful
of God to have made us know them. The Christian religion does this; it is in this that it
consists.
Let us herein examine the order of the world, and see if all things do not tend to
establish these two chief points of this religion: Jesus Christ is the end of all, and the
centre to which all tends. Whoever knows Him knows the reason of everything.
Those who fall into error err only through failure to see one of these two things. We
can then have an excellent knowledge of God without that of our own wretchedness, and of
our own wretchedness without that of God. But we cannot know Jesus Christ without knowing
at the same time both God and our own wretchedness.
Therefore I shall not undertake here to prove by natural reasons either the existence
of God, or the Trinity, or the immortality of the soul, or anything of that nature; not
only because I should not feel myself sufficiently able to find in nature arguments to
convince hardened atheists, but also because such knowledge without Jesus Christ is
useless and barren. Though a man should be convinced that numerical proportions are
immaterial truths, eternal and dependent on a first truth, in which they subsist, and
which is called God, I should not think him far advanced towards his own salvation.
The God of Christians is not a God who is simply the author of mathematical truths, or
of the order of the elements; that is the view of heathens and Epicureans. He is not
merely a God who exercises His providence over the life and fortunes of men, to bestow on
those who worship Him a long and happy life. That was the portion of the Jews. But the God
of Abraham, the God of Isaac, the God of Jacob, the God of Christians, is a God of love
and of comfort, a God who fills the soul and heart of those whom He possesses, a God who
makes them conscious of their inward wretchedness, and His infinite mercy, who unites
Himself to their inmost soul, who fills it with humility and joy, with confidence and
love, who renders them incapable of any other end than Himself.
All who seek God without Jesus Christ, and who rest in nature, either find no light to
satisfy them, or come to form for themselves a means of knowing God and serving Him
without a mediator. Thereby they fall either into atheism, or into deism, two things which
the Christian religion abhors almost equally.
Without Jesus Christ the world would not exist; for it should needs be either that it
would be destroyed or be a hell.
If the world existed to instruct man of God, His divinity would shine through every
part in it in an indisputable manner; but as it exists only by Jesus Christ, and for Jesus
Christ, and to teach men both their corruption and their redemption, all displays the
proofs of these two truths.
All appearance indicates neither a total exclusion nor a manifest presence of divinity,
but the presence of a God who hides Himself. Everything bears this character.
. . . Shall he alone who knows his nature know it only to be miserable? Shall he alone
who knows it be alone unhappy?
. . . He must not see nothing at all, nor must he see sufficient for him to believe he
possesses it; but he must see enough to know that he has lost it. For to know of his loss,
he must see and not see; and that is exactly the state in which he naturally is.
. . . Whatever part he takes, I shall not leave him at rest . . .
557
. . . It is then true that everything teaches man his condition, but he must understand
this well. For it is not true that all reveals God, and it is not true that all conceals
God. But it is at the same time true that He hides Himself from those who tempt Him, and
that He reveals Himself to those who seek Him, because men are both unworthy and capable
of God; unworthy by their corruption, capable by their original nature.
558
What shall we conclude from all our darkness, but our unworthiness?
559
If there never had been any appearance of God, this eternal deprivation would have been
equivocal, and might have as well corresponded with the absence of all divinity, as with
the unworthiness of men to Know Him; but His occasional, though not continual, appearances
remove the ambiguity. If He appeared once, He exists always; and thus we cannot but
conclude both that there is a God, and that men are unworthy of Him.
560
We do not understand the glorious state of Adam, nor the nature of his sin, nor the
transmission of it to us. These are matters which took place under conditions of a nature
altogether different from our own, and which transcend our present understanding.
The knowledge of all this is useless to us as a means of escape from it; and all that
we are concerned to know, is that we are miserable, corrupt, separated from God, but
ransomed by Jesus Christ, whereof we have wonderful proofs on earth.
So the two proofs of corruption and redemption are drawn from the ungodly, who live in
indifference to religion, and from the Jews who are irreconcilable enemies.
561
There are two ways of proving the truths of our religion; one by the power of reason,
the other by the authority of him who speaks.
We do not make use of the latter, but of the former. We do not say, "This must be
believed, for Scripture, which says it, is divine." But we say that it must be
believed for such and such a reason, which are feeble arguments, as reason may be bent to
everything.
562
There is nothing on earth that does not show either the wretchedness of man, or the
mercy of god; either the weakness of man without God, or the strength of man with God.
563
It will be one of the confusions of the damned to see that they are condemned by their
own reason, buy which they claimed to condemn the Christian religion.
564
The prophecies, the very miracles and proofs of our religion, are not of such a nature
that they can be said to be absolutely convincing. But they are also of such a kind that
it cannot be said that it is unreasonable to believe them. Thus there is both evidence and
obscurity to enlighten some and confuse others. But the evidence is such that it
surpasses, or at least equals, the evidence to the contrary; so that it is not reason
which can determine men not to follow it, and thus it can only be lust or malice of heart.
And by this means there is sufficient evidence to condemn, and insufficient to convince;
so that it appears in those who follow it, that it is grace, and not reason, which makes
them follow it; and in those who shun it, that it is lust, not reason, which makes them
shun it.
Vere discipuli, vere Israelita, vere liberi, vere cibus. 1
[Footnote 1: In allusion to John, viii. 31; i. 47; viii. 36; vi. 32: "Verily
disciples, verily an Israelite, verily children, verily food."]
565
Recognise, then, the truth of religion in the very obscurity of religion, in the little
light we have of it, and in the indifference which we have to knowing it.
566
We understand nothing of the works of God, if we do not take as a principle that He has
willed to blind some, and enlighten others.
567
The two contrary reasons. We must begin with that; without that we understand nothing,
and all is heretical; and we must even add at the end of each truth that the opposite
truth is to be remembered.
568
Objection. - The Scripture is plainly full of matters not dictated by the Holy Spirit.
- Answer. Then they do not harm faith. - Objection. But the Church has decided that all is
of the Holy Spirit. - Answer. I answer two things: first, the Church has not so decided;
secondly, if she should so decide, it could be maintained.
Do you think that the prophecies cited in the Gospel are related to make you believe?
No, it is to keep you from believing.
569
Canonical. - The heretical books in the beginning of the Church serve to prove the
canonical.
570
To the chapter on the fundamentals must be added that on Typology touching the reason
of types: why Jesus Christ was prophesied as to His first coming; why prophesied obscurely
as to the manner.
571
The reason why. Types. - [They had to deal with a carnal people and to render them the
depositary of the spiritual covenant.] To give faith to the Messiah, it was necessary
there should have been precedent prophecies, and that these should be conveyed by persons
above suspicion, diligent, faithful, unusually zealous, and known to all the world.
To accomplish all this, God chose this carnal people, to whom He entrusted the
prophecies which foretell the Messiah as a deliverer, and as a dispenser of those carnal
goods which this people loved. And thus they have had an extraordinary passion for their
prophets, and, in sight of the whole world, have had charge of these books which foretell
their Messiah, assuring all nations that He should come, and in the way foretold in the
books, which they held open to the whole world. Yet this people, deceived by the poor and
ignominious advent of the Messiah, have been His most cruel enemies. So that they, the
people least open to suspicion in the world of favouring us, the most strict and most
zealous that can be named for their law and their prophets, have kept the books incorrupt.
Hence those who have rejected and crucified Jesus Christ, who has been to them an offence,
are those who have charge of the books which testify of Him, and state that He will be an
offence and rejected. Therefore they have shown it was He by rejecting Him, and He has
been alike proved both by the righteous Jews who received Him, and by the unrighteous who
rejected Him, both facts having been foretold.
Wherefore the prophecies have a hidden and spiritual meaning, to which this people were
hostile, under the carnal meaning which they loved. If the spiritual meaning had been
revealed, they would not have loved it, and, unable to bear it, they would not have been
zealous of the preservation of their books and their ceremonies; and if they had loved
these spiritual promises, and had preserved them incorrupt till the time of the Messiah,
their testimony would have had no force, because they had been his friends.
Therefore it was well that the spiritual meaning should be concealed; but, on the other
hand, if this meaning had been so hidden as not to appear at all, it could not have served
as a proof of the Messiah. What then was done? In a crowd of passages it has been hidden
under the temporal meaning, and in a few has been clearly revealed; besides that the time
and the State of the world have been so clearly foretold that it is clearer than the sun.
And in some places this spiritual meaning is so clearly expressed, that it would require a
blindness like that which the flesh imposes on the spirit when it is subdued by it, not
recognise it.
See then what has been the prudence of God. This meaning is concealed under another in
an infinite number of passages, and in some, though rarely, it is revealed; but yet so
that the passages in which it is concealed are equivocal, and can suit both meanings;
whereas the passages where it is disclosed are unequivocal, and can only suit the
spiritual meaning.
So that this cannot lead us into error, and could only be misunderstood by so carnal a
people.
For when blessings are promised in abundance, what was to prevent them from
understanding the true blessings, but their covetousness, which limited the meaning to
worldly goods? But those whose only good was in God referred them to God alone. For there
are two principles, which divide the wills of men, covetousness and charity. Not that
covetousness cannot exist along with faith in God, nor charity with worldly riches; but
covetousness uses God, and enjoys the world, and charity is the opposite.
Now the ultimate end gives names to things. All which prevents us from attaining it, is
called an enemy to us. Thus the creatures, however good, are the enemies of the righteous,
when they turn them away from God, and God Himself is the enemy of those whose
covetousness He confounds.
Thus as the significance of the word "enemy" is dependent on the ultimate
end, the righteous understood by it their passions, and the carnal the Babylonians; and so
these terms were obscure only for the unrighteous. And this is what Isaiah says: Signa
legem in electis meis, 2 and that Jesus Christ shall be a stone of stumbling.
But, "Blessed are they who shall not be offended in him." Hosea, ult., says
excellently, "Where is the wise? and he shall understand what I say. The righteous
shall know them, for the ways of God are right; but the transgressors shall fall
therein."
[Footnote 2: Isaiah, viii. 16.]
572
Hypothesis that the apostles were impostors. - The time clearly, the manner obscurely.
- Five typical proofs
2000 (1600 prophets.) 2000 (400 scattered.)
573
Blindness of Scripture. - "The Scripture," said the Jews, "says that we
shall not know whence Christ will come (John vii.27 and xii.34). The Scripture says that
Christ abideth for ever, and He said that He should die." Therefore, says Saint John,
they believed not, though He had done so many miracles, that the word of Isaiah might be
fulfilled: "He hath blinded them," &c.
574
Greatness. - Religion is so great a thing that it is right that those who will not take
the trouble to seek it, if it be obscure, should be deprived of it. Why then do any
complain, if it be such as can be found by seeking?
575
All things work together for good to the elect, even the obscurities of Scripture; for
they honour them because of what is divinely clear. And all things work together for evil
to the rest of the world, even what is clear; for they revile such, because of the
obscurities which they do not understand.
576
The general conduct of the world towards the Church: God willing to blind and to
enlighten. - The event having proved the divinity of these prophecies, the rest ought to
be believed. And thereby we see the order of the world to be of this kind. The miracles of
the Creation and the Deluge being forgotten, God sends the law and the miracles of Moses,
the prophets who prophesied particular things; and to prepare a lasting miracle, He
prepares prophecies and their fulfilment; but, as the prophecies could be suspected, He
desires to make them above suspicion, &c.
577
God has made the blindness of this people subservient to the good of the elect.
578
There is sufficient clearness to enlighten the elect, and sufficient obscurity to
humble them. There is sufficient obscurity to blind the reprobate, and sufficient
clearness to condemn them, and make them inexcusable. - Saint Augustine, Montaigne,
Sebond.
The genealogy of Jesus Christ in the Old Testament is intermingled with so many others
that are useless, that it cannot be distinguished. If Moses had kept only the record of
the ancestors of Christ, that might have been too plain. If he had noted that of Jesus
Christ, it might not have been sufficiently plain. But, after all, whoever looks closely
sees that of Jesus Christ expressly traced through Tamar, Ruth, &c.
Those who ordained these sacrifices, knew their uselessness; those who have declared
their uselessness have not ceased to practise them.
If God had permitted only one religion, it had been too easily known; but when we look
at it closely, we clearly discern the truth amidst this confusion.
The premiss. - Moses was a clever man. If then he ruled himself by his reason, he would
say nothing clearly which was directly against reason.
Thus all the very apparent weaknesses are strength. Example: the two genealogies in
Saint Matthew and Saint Luke. What can be clearer than that this was not concerted?
579
God (and the Apostles), foreseeing that the seeds of pride would make heresies spring
up, and being unwilling to give them occasion to arise from correct expressions, has put
in Scripture and the prayers of the Church contrary words and sentences to produce their
fruit in time.
So in morals He gives charity, which produces fruits contrary to lust.
580
Nature has some perfections to show that she is the image of God, and some defects to
show that she is only His image.
581
God prefers rather to incline the will than the intellect. Perfect clearness would be
of use to the intellect, and would harm the will. To humble pride.
582
We make an idol of truth itself; for truth apart from charity is not God, but His image
and idol, which we must neither love nor worship; and still less must we love or worship
its opposite, namely, falsehood.
I can easily love total darkness; but if God keeps me in a state of semi-darkness, such
partial darkness displeases me, and, because I do not see therein the advantage of total
darkness, it is unpleasant to me. This is a fault, and a sign that I make for myself an
idol of darkness, apart from the order of God. Now only His order must be worshipped.
583
The feeble-minded are people who know the truth, but only affirm it so far as
consistent with their own interest. But, apart from that, they renounce it.
584
The world exists for the exercise of mercy and judgment, not as if men were placed in
it out of the hands of God, but as hostile to God; and to them He grants by grace
sufficient light, that they may return to Him, if they desire to seek and follow Him; and
also that they may be punished, if they refuse to seek or follow Him.
585
That God has willed to hide Himself. - If there were only one religion, God would
indeed be manifest. The same would be the case, if there were no martyrs but in our
religion.
God being thus hidden, every religion which does not affirm that God is hidden, is not
true; and every religion which does not give the reason of it, is not instructive. Our
religion does all this: Vere tu es Deus absconditus. 3
[Footnote 3: Truly thou art a hidden God."]
586
If there were no obscurity, man would not be sensible of his corruption; if there were
no light, man would not hope for a remedy. Thus, it is not only fair, but advantageous to
us, that God be partly hidden and partly revealed; since it is equally dangerous to man to
know God without knowing his own wretchedness, and to know his own wretchedness without
knowing God.
587
This religion, so great in miracles, saints, blameless Fathers, learned and great
witnesses, martyrs, established kings as David, and Isaiah, a prince of the blood, and so
great in science, after having displayed all her miracles and all her wisdom, rejects all
this, and declares that she has neither wisdom nor signs, but only the cross and
foolishness.
For those, who, by these signs and that wisdom, have deserved your belief, and who have
proved to you their character, declare to you that nothing of all this can change you, and
render you capable of knowing and loving God, but the power of the foolishness of the
cross without wisdom and signs, and not the signs without this power. Thus our religion is
foolish in respect to the effective cause, and wise in respect to the wisdom which
prepares it.
588
Our religion is wise and foolish. Wise, because it is the most learned, and the most
founded on miracles, prophecies, &c. Foolish, because it is not all this which makes
us belong to it. This makes us indeed condemn those who do not belong to it; but it does
not cause belief in those who do belong to it. It is the cross that makes them believe, ne
evacuata sit crux. 4 And so Saint Paul, who came with wisdom and signs, says
that he has come neither with wisdom nor with signs; for he came to convert. But those who
come only to convince, can say that they come with wisdom and with signs.
[Footnote 4: I Corinthians, i. 17.]
Section IX
Part I
Perpetuity
589
On the fact that the Christian religion is not the only religion. - So far is this from
being a reason for believing that it is not the true one, that, on the contrary, it makes
us see that it is so.
590
Men must be sincere in all religions, true heathens, true Jews, true Christians.
591
J. C. Heathens Mahomet Ignorance of God.
592
The falseness of other religions. - They have no witnesses. The Jews have. God defies
other religions to produce such signs: Isaiah xiii. 9; xliv. 8.
593
History of China. - I believe only the histories, whose witnesses got themselves
killed.
[Which is the more credible of the two, Moses or China?]
It is not a question of seeing this summarily. I tell you there is in it something to
blind, and something to enlighten.
By this one word I destroy all your reasoning. "But China obscures," say you;
and I answer, "China obscures, but there is clearness to be found; seek it."
Thus all that you say makes for one of the views, and not at all against the other. So
this serves, and does no harm.
We must then see this in detail; we must put the papers on the table.
594
Against the history of China. The historians of Mexico, the five suns, of which the
last is only eight hundred years old.
The difference between a book accepted by a nation, and one which makes a nation.
595
Mahomet was without authority. His reasons then should have been very strong, having
only their own force. What does he say then, that we must believe him?
596
The Psalms are chanted throughout the whole world.
Who renders testimony to Mahomet? Himself. Jesus Christ desires His own testimony to be
as nothing.
The quality of witnesses necessitates their existence always and everywhere; and he,
miserable creature, is alone.
597
Against Mahomet. - The Koran is not more of Mahomet than the Gospel is of Saint
Matthew, for it is cited by many authors from age to age. Even its very enemies, Celsus
and Porphyry, never denied it.
The Koran says Saint Matthew was an honest man. Therefore Mahomet was a false prophet
for calling honest men wicked, or for not agreeing with what they have said of Jesus
Christ.
598
It is not by that which is obscure in Mahomet, and which may be interpreted in a
mysterious sense, that I would have him judged, but by what is clear, as his paradise and
the rest. In that he is ridiculous. And since what is clear is ridiculous, it is not right
to take his obscurities for mysteries.
It is not the same with the Scripture. I agree that there are in it obscurities as
strange as those of Mahomet; but there are admirably clear passages, and the prophecies
are manifestly fulfilled. The cases are therefore not on a par. We must not confound, and
put on one level things which only resemble each other in their obscurity, and not in the
clearness, which requires us to reverence the obscurities.
599
The difference between Jesus Christ and Mahomet. - Mahomet was not foretold; Jesus
Christ was foretold.
Mahomet slew; Jesus Christ caused His own to be slain.
Mahomet forbade reading; the Apostles ordered reading.
In fact the two are so opposed, that if Mahomet took the way to succeed from a worldly
point of view, Jesus Christ, from the same point of view, took the way to perish. And
instead of concluding that, since Mahomet succeeded, Jesus Christ might well have
succeeded, we ought to say that since Mahomet succeeded, Jesus Christ should have failed.
600
Any man can do what Mahomet has done; for he performed no miracles, he was not
foretold. No man can do what Christ has done.
601
The heathen religion has no foundation [at the present day. It is said once to have had
a foundation by the oracles which spoke. But what are the books which assure us of this?
Are they so worthy of belief on account of the virtue of their authors? Have they been
preserved with such care that we can be sure that they have not been meddled with?]
The Mahomedan religion has for a foundation the Koran and Mahomet. But has this
prophet, who was to be the last hope of the world, been foretold? What sign has he that
every other man has not, who chooses to call himself a prophet? What miracles does he
himself say that he has done? What mysteries has he taught, even according to his own
tradition? What was the morality, what the happiness held out by him?
The Jewish religion must be differently regarded in the tradition of the Holy Bible,
and in the tradition of the people. Its morality and happiness are absurd in the tradition
of the people, but are admirable in that of the Holy Bible. (And all religion is the same;
for the Christian religion is very different in the Holy Bible and in the casuists.) The
foundation is admirable; it is the most ancient book in the world, and the most authentic;
and whereas Mahomet, in order to make his own book continue in existence, forbade men to
read it, Moses, for the same reason, ordered every one to read his.
Our religion is so divine that another divine religion has only been the foundation of
it.
602
Order. - To see what is clear and indisputable in the whole state of the Jews.
603
The Jewish religion is wholly divine in its authority, its duration, its perpetuity,
its morality, its doctrine, and its effects.
604
The only science contrary to common sense and human nature is that alone which has
always existed among men.
605
The only religion contrary to nature, to common sense. and to our pleasure, is that
alone which has always existed.
606
No religion but our own has taught that man is born in sin. No sect of philosophers has
said this. Therefore none have declared the truth.
No sect or religion has always existed on earth, but the Christian religion.
607
Whoever judges of the Jewish religion by its coarser forms will misunderstand it. It is
to be seen in the Holy Bible, and in the tradition of the prophets, who have made it plain
enough that they did not interpret the law according to the letter. So our religion is
divine in the Gospel, in the Apostles, and in tradition; but it is absurd in those who
tamper with it.
The Messiah, according to the carnal Jews, was to be a great temporal prince. Jesus
Christ, according to carnal Christians, has come to dispense us from the love of God, and
to give us sacraments which shall do everything without our help. Such is not the
Christian religion, nor the Jewish. True Jews and true Christians have always expected a
Messiah who should make them love God, and by that love triumph over their enemies.
608
The carnal Jews hold a midway place between Christians and heathens. The heathens know
not God, and love the world only. The Jews know the true God, and love the world only. The
Christians know the true God, and love not the world. Jews and heathens love the same
good. Jews and Christians know the same God.
The Jews were of two kinds; the first had only heathen affections, the other had
Christian affections.
609
The are two kinds of men in each religion: among the heathen, worshippers of beasts,
and the worshippers of the one only God of natural religion; among the Jews, the carnal,
and the spiritual, who were the Christians of the old law; among Christians, the
coarser-minded, who are the Jews of the new law. The carnal Jews looked for a carnal
Messiah; the coarser Christians believe that the Messiah has dispensed them from the love
of God; true Jews and true Christians worship a Messiah who makes them love God.
610
To show that the true Jews and the true Christians have but the same religion. - The
religion of the Jews seemed to consist essentially in the fatherhood of Abraham, in
circumcision, in sacrifices, in ceremonies, in the Ark, in the temple, in Jerusalem, and,
finally, in the law, and in the covenant with Moses.
I say that it consisted in none of those things, but only in the love of God, and that
God disregarded all the other things.
That God did not accept the posterity of Abraham.
That the Jews were to be punished like strangers, if they transgressed. Deut., viii.
19: "If thou do at all forget the Lord thy God, and walk after other gods, I testify
against you this day that ye shall surely perish, as the nations which the Lord destroyeth
before your face."
That strangers, if they loved God, were to be received by Him as the Jews. Isaiah, lvi.
3: "Let not the stranger say, 'The Lord will not receive me.' The strangers who join
themselves unto the Lord to serve Him and love Him, will I bring unto my holy mountain,
and accept therein sacrifices, for mine house is a house of prayer."
That the true Jews considered their merit to be from God only, and not from Abraham.
Isaiah, lxiii. 16: "Doubtless thou art our Father, though Abraham be ignorant of us,
and Israel acknowledge us not. Thou art our Father and our Redeemer."
Moses himself told them that God would not accept persons. Deut., x. 17:
"God," said he, "regardeth neither persons nor sacrifices."
The Sabbath was only a sign, Exod., xxxi. 13; and in memory of the escape from Egypt,
Deut., v. 15. Therefore it is no longer necessary, since Egypt must be forgotten.
Circumcision was only a sign, Gen., xvii. 11. And thence it came to pass that, being in
the desert, they were not circumcised, because they could not be confounded with other
peoples; and after Jesus Christ came, it was no longer necessary.
That the circumcision of the heart is commanded. Deut., x. 16; Jeremiah, iv. 4:
"Be ye circumcised in heart; take away the superfluities of your heart, and harden
yourselves not. For your God is a mighty God, strong and terrible, who accepteth not
persons."
That God said He would one day do it. Deut., xxx. 6: "God will circumcise thine
heart, and the heart of thy seed, that thou mayest love Him with all thine heart."
That the uncircumcised in heart shall be judged. Jeremiah, ix. 26: For God will judge
the uncircumcised peoples, and all the people of Israel, because he is "uncircumcised
in heart."
That the external is of no avail apart from the internal. Joel, ii. 13; Scindite corda
vestra, &c. Isaiah, lviii. 3, 4, &c.
The love of God is enjoined in the whole of Deuteronomy. Deut., xxx. 19: "I call
heaven and earth to record that I have set before you life and death, that you should
choose life, and love God, and obey Him, for God is your life."
That the Jews, for lack of that love, should be rejected for their offences, and the
heathen chosen in their stead. Hosea, i. 10; Deut., xxxii. 20. "I will hide myself
from them in view of their latter sins, for they are a froward generation without faith.
They have moved me to jealousy with that which is not God, and I will move them to
jealousy with those which are not a people, and with an ignorant and foolish nation."
Isaiah, lxv. 1.
That temporal goods are false, and that the true good is to be united to God. Psalm
cxliii. 15.
That their feasts are displeasing to God. Amos, v. 21.
That the sacrifices of the Jews displeased God. Isaiah, lxvi. 1-3; i. 11; Jer., vi. 20;
David, Miserere. - Even on the part of the good, Expectavi. Psalm xlix. 8, 9, 10, 11, 12,
13, and 14.
That He has established them only for their hardness. Micah, admirably, vi.; I Kings,
xv. 22; Hosea, vi. 6.
That the sacrifices of the Gentiles will be accepted of God, and that God will take no
pleasure in the sacrifices of the Jews. Malachi, i. 11.
That God will make a new covenant with the Messiah, and the old will be annulled. Jer.,
xxxi. 31. Mandata non bona. Ezek.
That the old things will be forgotten. Isaiah, xliii. 18, 19; lxv. 17, 18.
That the Ark will no longer be remembered. Jer., iii. 15.
That the temple should be rejected. Jer., vii. 12, 13, 14.
That the sacrifices should be rejected, and other pure sacrifices established. Malachi,
i. 11.
That the order of Aaron's priesthood should be rejected, and that of Melchizedek
introduced by the Messiah. Ps. Dixit Dominus.
That this priesthood should be eternal. Ibid.
That Jerusalem should be rejected, and Rome admitted. Ps. Dixit Dominus.
That the name of the Jews should be rejected, and a new name given. Isaiah, lxv. 15.
That this last name should be more excellent than that of the Jews, and eternal.
Isaiah. lvi. 5.
That the Jews should be without prophets (Amos), without a king, without princes,
without sacrifice, without an idol.
That the Jews should nevertheless always remain a people. Jer. xxxi. 36.
611
Republic. - The Christian Republic - and even the Jewish - has only had God for ruler,
as Philo the Jew notices, On Monarchy.
When they fought, it was for God only; their chief hope was in God only; they
considered their towns as belonging to God only, and kept them for God. 1 Chron., xix. 13.
612
Gen., xvii. 7. Statuam pactum meum inter me et te foedere sempiterno ut sim Deus tuus.
Gen., xvii. 9. Et tu ergo custodies pactum meum.
613
Perpetuity. - That religion has always existed on earth, which consists in believing
that man has fallen from a state of glory and of communion with God into a state of
sorrow, penitence, and estrangement from God, but that after this life we shall be
restored by a Messiah who should have come. All things have passed away, and this has
endured, for which all things are.
Men have in the first age of the world been carried away into every kind of debauchery,
and yet there were saints, as Enoch, Lamech, and others, who waited patiently for the
Christ promised from the beginning of the world. Noah saw the wickedness of men at its
height; and he was held worthy to save the world in his person, by the hope of the Messiah
of whom he was the type. Abraham was surrounded by idolaters, when God made known to him
the mystery of the Messiah, whom he welcomed from afar. In the time of Isaac and Jacob
abomination was spread over all the earth; but these saints lived in faith; and Jacob,
dying and blessing his children, cried in a transport which made him break off his
discourse, "I await, O my God, the Saviour whom Thou hast promised. Salutare tuum
expectabo, Domine." The Egyptians were infected both with idolatry and magic; the
very people of God were led astray by their example. Yet Moses and others believed Him
whom they saw not, and worshipped Him, looking to the eternal gifts which He was preparing
for them.
The Greeks and Latins then set up false deities; the poets made a hundred different
theologies, while the philosophers separated into a thousand different sects; and yet in
the heart of Judaea there were always chosen men who foretold the coming of this Messiah,
which was known to them alone.
He came at length in the fulness of time, and time has since witnessed the birth of so
many schisms and heresies, so many political revolutions, so many changes in all things;
yet this Church, which worships Him who has always been worshipped, has endured
uninterruptedly. It is a wonderful, incomparable, and altogether divine fact that this
religion, which has always endured, has always been attacked. It has been a thousand times
on the eve of universal destruction, and every time it has been in that state, God has
restored it by extraordinary acts of His power. This is astonishing, as also that it has
preserved itself without yielding to the will of tyrants. For it is not strange that a
State endures, when its laws are sometimes made to give way to necessity, but that . . .
(See the passage indicated in Montaigne.)
614
States would perish if they did not often make their laws give way to necessity. But
religion has never suffered this, or practised it. Indeed there must be these compromises,
or miracles. It is not strange to be saved by yielding, and this is not strictly
self-preservation; besides, in the end they perish entirely. None has endured a thousand
years. But the fact that this religion has always maintained itself, inflexible as it is,
proves its divinity.
615
Whatever may be said, it must be admitted that the Christian religion has something
astonishing in it. Some will say, "This is because you were born in it." Far
from it; I stiffen myself against it for this very reason, for fear this prejudice bias
me. But although I am born in it, I cannot help finding it so.
616
Perpetuity. - The Messiah has always been believed in. The tradition from Adam was
still fresh in Noah and in Moses. Since then the prophets have foretold him, while at the
same time foretelling other things, which, being from time to time fulfilled in the sight
of men, showed the truth of their mission, and consequently that of their promises
touching the Messiah. Jesus Christ performed miracles, and the Apostles also, who
converted all the heathen; and all the prophecies being thereby fulfilled, the Messiah is
for ever proved.
617
Perpetuity. - Let us consider that since the beginning of the world the expectation or
worship of the Messiah has existed uninterruptedly; that there have been found men, who
said that God had revealed to them that a Redeemer was to be born, who should save His
people; that Abraham came afterwards, saying that he had had a revelation that the Messiah
was to spring from him by a son, whom he should have; that Jacob declared that, of his
twelve sons, the Messiah would spring from Judah; that Moses and the prophets then came to
declare the time and the manner of His coming; that they said their law was only temporary
till that of the Messiah, that it should endure till then, but that the other should last
for ever; that thus either their law, or that of the Messiah, of which it was the promise,
would be always upon the earth; that, in fact, it has always endured; that at last Jesus
Christ came with all the circumstances foretold. This is wonderful.
618
This is positive fact. While all philosophers separate into different sects, there is
found in one corner of the world the most ancient people in it, declaring that all the
world is in error, that God has revealed to them the truth, that they will always exist on
the earth. In fact, all other sects come to an end, this one still endures, and has done
so for four thousand years.
They declare that they hold from their ancestors that man has fallen from communion
with God, and is entirely estranged from God, but that He has promised to redeem them;
that this doctrine shall always exist on the earth; that their law has a double
signification; that during sixteen hundred years they have had people, whom they believed
prophets, foretelling both the time and the manner; that four hundred years after they
were scattered everywhere, because Jesus Christ was to be everywhere announced; that Jesus
Christ came in the manner, and at the time foretold; that the Jews have since been
scattered abroad under a curse, and nevertheless still exist.
This is positive fact. While all philosophers separate into different sects, there is
found in one corner of the world the most ancient people in it, declaring that all the
world is in error, that God has revealed to them the truth, that they will always exist on
the earth. In fact, all other sects come to an end, this one still endures, and has done
so for four thousand years.
They declare that they hold from their ancestors that man has fallen from communion
with God, and is entirely estranged from God, but that He has promised to redeem them;
that this doctrine shall always exist on the earth; that their law has a double
signification; that during sixteen hundred years they have had people, whom they believed
prophets, foretelling both the time and the manner; that four hundred years after they
were scattered everywhere, because Jesus Christ was to be everywhere announced; that Jesus
Christ came in the manner, and at the time foretold; that the Jews have since been
scattered abroad under a curse, and nevertheless still exist.
Part II
619
I see the Christian religion founded upon a preceding religion, and this is what I find
as a fact.
I do not here speak of the miracles of Moses, of Jesus Christ, and of the Apostles,
because they do not at first seem convincing, and because I only wish here to put in
evidence all those foundations of the Christian religion which are beyond doubt, and which
cannot be called in question by any person whatsoever. It is certain that we see in many
places of the world a peculiar people, separated from all other peoples of the world, and
called the Jewish people.
I see then a crowd of religions in many parts of the world and in all times; but their
morality cannot please me, nor can their proofs convince me. Thus I should equally have
rejected the religion of Mahomet and of China, of the ancient Romans and of the Egyptians,
for the sole reason, that none having more marks of truth than another, nor anything which
should necessarily persuade me, reason cannot incline to one rather than the other.
But, in thus considering this changeable and singular variety of morals and beliefs at
different times, I find in one corner of the world a peculiar people, separated from all
other peoples on earth, the most ancient of all, and whose histories are earlier by many
generations than the most ancient which we possess.
I find then this great and numerous people, sprung from a single man, who worship one
God, and guide themselves by a law which they say that they obtained from His own hand.
They maintain that they are the only people in the world to whom God has revealed His
mysteries; that all men are corrupt and in disgrace with God that they are all abandoned
to their senses and their own imagination, whence come the strange errors and continual
changes which happen among them, both of religions and of morals, whereas they themselves
remain firm in their conduct; but that God will not leave other nations in this darkness
for ever; that there will come a Saviour for all; that they are in the world to announce
Him to men; that they are expressly formed to be forerunners and heralds of this great
event, and to summon all nations to join with them in the expectation of this Saviour.
To meet with this people is astonishing to me, and seems to me worthy of attention. I
look at the law which they boast of having obtained from God, and I find it admirable. It
is the first law of all, and is of such a kind that, even before the term law was in
currency among the Greeks, it had, for nearly a thousand years earlier, been
uninterruptedly accepted and observed by the Jews. I likewise think it strange that the
first law of the world happens to be the most perfect; so that the greatest legislators
have borrowed their laws from it, as is apparent from the law of the Twelve Tables at
Athens, afterwards taken by the Romans, and as it would be easy to prove, if Josephus and
others had not sufficiently dealt with this subject.
620
Advantages of the Jewish people. - In this search the Jewish people at once attract my
attention by the number of wonderful and singular facts which appear about them.
I first see that they a people wholly composed of brethren, and whereas all others are
formed by the assemblage of an infinity of families, this, though so wonderfully fruitful,
has all sprung from one man alone, and, being thus all one flesh, and members one of
another, they constitute a powerful state of one family. This is unique.
This family, or people, is the most ancient within human knowledge, a fact which seems
to me to inspire a peculiar veneration for it, especially in view of our present inquiry;
since if God has from all time revealed Himself to men, it is to these we must turn for
knowledge of the tradition.
This people is not eminent solely by their antiquity, but is also singular by their
duration, which has always continued from their origin till now. For whereas the nations
of Greece and of Italy, of Lecedaemon, of Athens and of Rome, and others who came long
after, have long since perished, these ever remain, and in spite of the endeavours of many
powerful kings who have a hundred times tried to destroy them, as their historians
testify, and as it is easy to conjecture from the natural order of things during so long a
space of years, they have nevertheless been preserved (and this preservation has been
foretold); and extending from the earliest times to the latest, their history comprehends
in its duration all our histories [which it preceded by a long time].
The law by which this people is governed is at once the most ancient law in the world,
the most perfect, and the only one which has been always observed without a break in a
state. This is what Josephus admirably proves, against Apion, and also Philo the Jew, in
different places where they point out that it is so ancient that the very name of law was
only known by the oldest nation more than a thousand years afterwards; so that Homer, who
has written the history of so many states, has never used the term. And it is easy to
judge of its perfection by simply reading it; for we see that it has provided for all
things with so great wisdom, equity and judgment, that the most ancient legislators, Greek
and Roman, having had some knowledge of it, have borrowed from it their principal laws;
this is evident from what are called the Twelve Tables, and from the other proofs which
Josephus gives.
But this law is at the same time the severest and strictest of all in respect to their
religious worship, imposing on this people, in order to keep them to their duty, a
thousand peculiar and painful observances, on pain of death. Whence it is very astonishing
that it has been constantly preserved during many centuries by a people, rebellious and
impatient as this one was; while all other states have charged their laws from time to
time, although these were far more lenient.
The book which contains this law, the first of all, is itself the most ancient book in
the world, those of Homer, Hesiod, and others, being six or seeen hundred years later.
621
The creation and the deluge being past, and God no longer requiring to destroy the
world, nor to create it anew, nor to give such great signs of Himself, He began to
establish a people on the earth, purposely formed, who were to last until the coming of
the people whom the Messiah should fashion by His spirit.
622
The creation of the world beginning to be distant, God provided a single contemporary
historian, and appointed a whole people as guardians of this book, in order that this
history might be the most authentic in the world, and that all men might thereby learn a
fact so necessary to know, and which could only be known through that means.
623
[Japhet begins the genealogy.]
Joseph folds his arms, and prefers to keep silent.
624
Why should Moses make the lives of men so long, and their generations so few?
Because it is not the length of years, but the multitude of generations, which renders
things obscure. For truth is perverted only by the change of men. And yet he puts two
things, the most memorable that were ever imagined, namely, the creation and the deluge,
so near that we reach from one to the other.
625
Shem, who saw Lamech, who saw Adam, saw also Jacob, who saw those who saw Moses;
therefore the deluge and the creation are true. This is conclusive among certain people
who understand it rightly.
626
The longevity of the patriarchs, instead of causing the loss of past history, conduced,
on the contrary, to its preservation. For the reason why we are sometimes insufficiently
instructed in the history of our ancestors, is that we have never lived long with them,
and that they are often dead before we have attained the age of reason. Now, when men
lived so long, children lived long with their parents. They conversed long with them. But
what else could be the subject of their talk save the history of their ancestors, since to
that all history was reduced, and men did not study science or art, which now form a large
part of daily conversation? We see also that in these days tribes took particular care to
preserve their genealogies.
627
I believe that Joshua was the first of God's people to have this name, as Jesus Christ
was the last of God's people.
628
Antiquity of the Jews. - What a difference there is between one book and another! I am
not astonished that the Greeks made the Iliad, nor the Egyptians and the Chinese their
histories.
We have only to see how this originates. These fabulous historians are not
contemporaneous with the facts about which they write. Homer composes a romance, which he
gives out as such, and which is received as such; for nobody doubted that Troy and
Agamemnon no more existed than did the golden apple. Accordingly he did not think of
making a history, but solely a book to amuse; he is the only writer of his time; the
beauty of the work has made it last, every one learns it and talks of it, it is necessary
to know it, and each one knows it by heart. Four hundred years afterwards the witnesses of
these facts are no longer alive, no one knows of his own knowledge if it be a fable or a
history; one has only learnt it from his ancestors, and this can pass for truth.
Every history which is not contemporaneous, as the books of the Sibyls and
Trismegistus, and so many others which have been believed by the world, are false, and
found to be false in the course of time. It is not so with contemporaneous writers.
There is a great difference between a book which an individual writes, and publishes to
a nation, and a book which itself creates a nation. We cannot doubt that the book is as
old as the people.
629
Josephus hides the shame of his nation. Moses does not hide his own shame. Quis mihi
det ut omnes prophetent? 1 He was weary of the multitude.
[Footnote 1: Numbers, xi. 29.]
630
The sincerity of the Jews. - Maccabees, after they had no more prophets; the Masorah,
since Jesus Christ.
This book will be a testimony for you.
Defective and final letters.
Sincere against their honour, and dying for it; this has no example in the world, and
no root in nature.
631
Sincerity of the Jews. - They preserve lovingly and carefully the book in which Moses
declares that they have been all their life ungrateful to God, and that he knows they will
be still more so after his death; but that he calls heaven and earth to witness against
them, and that he has [taught] them enough.
He declares that God, being angry with them, shall at last scatter them among all the
nations of the earth; that as they have offended Him by worshipping gods who were not
their God, so He will provoke them by calling a people who are not His people; that He
desires that all His words be preserved for ever, and that His book be placed in the Ark
of the Covenant to serve for ever as a witness against them.
Isaiah says the same thing, xxx.
632
On Esdras. - The story that the books were burnt with the temple proved false by
Maccabees: "Jeremiah gave them the law."
The story that he recited the whole by heart. Josephus and Esdras point out that he
read the book. Baronius, Annales, p. 180: Nullus penitus Hebraeorum antiquorum reperitur
qui tradiderit libros periisse et per Esdram esse restitutos, nisi in IV. Esdrae. 2
[Footnote 2: "Nothing is found within the ancient Hebrew writings which recorded
that the books perished and were restored through Esdras, except in Esdras, IV."]
The story that he changed the letters.
Philo, in Vita Moysis: Illa lingua ac character quo antiquitus scripta est lex sic
permansit usque ad LXX. 3
[Footnote 3: "The same language and character in which the Law was written in
ancient times remained till the Septuagint."]
Josephus says that the Law was in Hebrew when it was translated by the Seventy.
Under Antiochus and Vespasian, when they wanted to abolish the books, and when there
was no prophet, they could not do so. And under the Babylonians, when no persecution had
been made, and when there were so many prophets, would they have let them be burnt?
Josephus laughs at the Greeks who would not bear . . .
Tertullian. - Perinde potuit abolefactam eam violentia cataclysmi in spiritu rursus
reformare, quemadmodum et Hierosolymis Babylonia expugnatione deletis, omne instrumentum
Judaicae literaturae per Esdram constat restauratum. 4
[Footnote 4: Tertullian, De cultu femin., ii. 3.]
He says that Noah could as easily have restored in spirit the book of Enoch, destroyed
by the Deluge, as Esdras could have restored the Scriptures lost during the Captivity.
(Oeos) ev rn eni NaBouxodovobop aixuaXwbia rov Xaov, dlapOaPelbwv rwv yPapwv . . .
evenveubev "Ebdpa rw iePel ek rns pvXns Aevi rovs rwv nPoyeyovorwv nPopnrwv navras
avaraEabOal Xoyovs, kai anokarabrnbal rw Xaw rnv dla Mwvbews vouoOebiav. 5 He
alleges this to prove that it is not incredible that the Seventy may have explained the
holy Scriptures with that uniformity which we admire in them. And he took that from Saint
Irenaeus.
[Footnote 5: Eusebius, Historia ecclesiastica, lib. v., c. 8.]
Saint Hilary, in his preface to the Psalms, says that Esdras arranged the Psalms in
order.
The origin of this tradition comes from the fourteenth chapter of the fourth book of
Esdras. Deus glorificatus est, et Scripturae vere divinae creditae sunt, omnibus eandem et
eisdem verbis et eisdem nominibus recitantibus ab initio usque ad finem, uti et praesentes
gentes cognoscerent quoniam per inspirationem Dei interpretatae sunt Scripturae et non
esset mirabile Deum hoc in eis operatum: quando in ea captivitate populi quae facta est a
Nabuchodonosor, corruptis scripturis et post 70 annos Judaeis descendentibus in regionem
suam, et post deinde temporibus Artaxercis Persarum regis, inspiravit Esdrae sacerdoti
tribus Levi praeteritorum prophetarum omnes rememorare sermones, et restituere populo eam
legem quae data est per Moysen.
633
Against the story in Esdras, II. Maccab., ii.; - Josephus Antiquities, II. i. - Cyrus
took occasion from the prophecy of Isaiah to release the people. The Jews held their
property in peace under Cyrus in Babylon; hence they could well have the Law.
Josephus, in the whole history of Esdras, does not say one word about this restoration.
- II. Kings, xvii. 27.
634
If the story in Esdras is credible, then it must be believed that the Scripture is Holy
Scripture; for this story is based only on the authority of those who assert that of the
Seventy, which shows that the Scripture is holy.
Therefore if this account be true, we have what we want therein; if not, we have it
elsewhere. And thus those who would ruin the truth of our religion, founded on Moses,
establish it by the same authority by which they attack it. So by this providence it still
exists.
635
Chronology of Rabbinism. (The citations of pages are from the book Pugio.)
Page 27. R. Hakadosch (anno 200), author of the Mischna, or vocal law, or second law.
Commentaries on the Mischna (anno 340): The one Siphra.
Barajetot.
Talmud Hierosol.
Tosiphtot.
Bereschit Rabah, by R. Osaiah Rabah, commentary on the Mischna.
Bereschit Rabah, Bar Naconi, are subtle and pleasant discourses, historical and
theological. This same author wrote the books called Rabot.
A hundred years after the Talmud Hierosol, 440 A.D., was composed the Babylonian
Talmud, by R. Ase, by the universal consent of all the Jews, who are necessarily obliged
to observe all that is contained therein.
The addition of R. Ase is called the Gemara, that is to say, the "commentary"
on the Mischna. And the Talmud includes together the Mischna and the Gemara.
636
If does not indicate indifference: Malachi, Isaiah.
Is., Si volumus, &c.
In quacumque die.
637
Prophecies. - The sceptre was not interrupted by the captivity in Babylon, because the
return was promised and foretold.
638
Proofs of Jesus Christ. - Captivity, with the assurance of deliverance within seventy
years, was not real captivity. But now they are captives without any hope.
God has promised them that even though He should scatter them to the ends of the earth,
nevertheless if they were faithful to His law, He would assemble them together again. They
are very faithful to it, and remain oppressed.
639
When Nebuchadnezzar carried away the people, for fear they should believe that the
sceptre had departed from Judah, they were told beforehand that they would be there for a
short time, and that they would be restored. They were always consoled by the prophets;
and their kings continued. But the second destruction is without promise of restoration,
without prophets, without kings, without consolation, without hope, because the sceptre is
taken away for ever.
640
It is a wonderful thing, and worthy of particular attention, to see this Jewish people
existing so many years in perpetual misery, it being necessary as a proof of Jesus Christ,
both that they should exist to prove Him, and that they should be miserable because they
crucified Him, and though to be miserable and to exist are contradictory, they
nevertheless still exist in spite of their misery.
641
They are visibly a people expressly created to serve as a witness to the Messiah
(Isaiah, xliii. 9; xliv. 8) They keep the books, and love them, and do not understand
them. And all this was foretold; that God's judgments are entrusted to them, but as a
sealed book.
Section X
Part I
Typology
642
Proof of the two Testaments at once. - To prove the two at one stroke, we need only see
if the prophecies in one are fulfilled in the other. To examine the prophecies, we must
understand them. For if we believe they have only one meaning, it is certain that the
Messiah has not come; but if they have two meanings, it is certain that He has come in
Jesus Christ.
The whole problem then is to know if they have two meanings.
That the Scripture has two meanings, which Jesus Christ and the Apostles have given, is
shown by the following proofs:
1. Proof by Scripture itself.
2. Proof by the Rabbis. Moses Maimonides says that it has two aspects, and that the
prophets have prophesied Jesus Christ only.
3. Proof by the Kabbala.
4. Proof by the mystical interpretation which the Rabbis themselves give to Scripture.
5. Proof by the principles of the Rabbis, that there are two meanings; that there are
two advents of the Messiah, a glorious and humiliating one, according to their desert;
that the prophets have prophesied of the Messiah only - the Law is not eternal, but must
change at the coming of the Messiah that then they shall no more remember the Red sea;
that the Jews and the Gentiles shall be mingled.
[6. Proof by the key which Jesus Christ and the Apostles give us.]
643
Isaiah, li. The Red Sea an image of the Redemption. Ut sciatis quod filius hominis
habet potestatem remittendi peccata, tibi dico: Surge. 1 God, wishing to show
that He could form a people holy with an invisible holiness, and fill them with an eternal
glory, made visible things. As nature is an image of grace, He has done in the bounties of
nature what He would do in those of grace, in order that we might judge that He could make
the invisible, since He made the visible excellently.
[Footnote 1: Mark, ii. 10, 11.]
Therefore He saved this people from the deluge; He has raised them up from Abraham,
redeemed them from their enemies, and set them at rest.
The object of God was not to save them from the deluge, and raise up a whole people
from Abraham, only in order to bring them into a rich land.
And even grace is only the type of glory, for it is not the ultimate end. It has been
symbolised by the law, and itself symbolises [glory]. But it is the type of it, and the
origin or cause.
The ordinary life of men is like that of the saints. They all seek their satisfaction,
and differ only in the object in which they place it; they call those their enemies who
hinder them, &c. God has then shown the power which He has of giving invisible
blessings, by that which He has shown Himself to have over things visible.
644
Types. - God, wishing to form for Himself an holy people, whom He should separate from
all other nations, whom He should deliver from their enemies and should put into a place
of rest, has promised to do so, and has foretold by His prophets the time and the manner
of His coming. And yet, to confirm the hope of His elect, He has made them see it in an
image through all time, without leaving them devoid of assurances of His power and of His
will to save them. For, at the creation of man, Adam was the witness, and guardian of the
promise of a Saviour, who should be born of woman, when men were still so near the
creation that they could not have forgotten their creation and their fall. When those who
had seen Adam were no longer in the world. God sent Noah whom He saved, and drowned the
whole earth by a miracle which sufficiently indicated the power which He had to save the
world, and the will which He had to do so, and to raise up from the seed of woman Him whom
He had promised. This miracle was enough to confirm the hope of men.
The memory of the deluge being so fresh among men, while Noah was still alive, God made
promises to Abraham, and, while Shem was still living, sent Moses, &c. . . .
645
Types. - God, willing to deprive His own of perishable blessings, created the Jewish
people in order to show that this was not owing to lack of power.
646
The Synagogue did not perish, because it was a type. But because it was only a type, it
fell into servitude. The type existed till the truth came, in order that the Church should
be always visible, either in the sign which promised it, or in substance.
647
That the law was figurative.
648
Two errors: 1. To take everything literally. 2. To take everything spiritually.
649
To speak against too greatly figurative language.
650
There are some types clear and demonstrative, but others which seem somewhat
far-fetched, and which convince only those who are already persuaded. These are like the
Apocalyptics. But the difference is that they have none which are certain, so that nothing
is so unjust as to claim that theirs are as well founded as some of ours; for they have
none so demonstrative as some of ours. The comparison is unfair. We must not put on the
same level, and confound things, because they seem to agree in one point, while they are
so different in another. The clearness in divine things requires us to revere the
obscurities in them.
[It is like men, who employ a certain obscure language among themselves. Those who
should not understand it, would understand only a foolish meaning.]
651
Extravagances of the Apocalyptics, Preadamites, Millenarians, etc. - He who would base
extravagant opinions on Scripture, will, for example, base them on this. It is said that
"this generation shall not pass till all these things be fulfilled." Upon that I
will say that after that generation will come another generation, and so on ever in
succession.
Solomon and the King are spoken of in the second book of Chronicles, as if they were
two different persons. I will say that they were two.
652
Particular Types. - A double law, double tables of the law, a double temple, a double
captivity.
653
Types. - The prophets prophesied by symbols of a girdle, a beard and burnt hair,
&c.
654
Difference between dinner and supper.
In God the word does not differ from the intention, for He is true; nor the word from
the effect, for He is powerful; nor the means from the effect, for He is wise. Bern., ult.
sermo in Missam.
Augustine, De civitate Dei, v. 10. This rule is general. God can do everything, except
those things, which if He could do, He would not be almighty, as dying, being deceived,
lying, &c.
Many Evangelists for the confirmation of the truth: their difference useful.
The Eucharist after the Lord's Supper. Truth after the type.
The ruin of Jerusalem, a type of the ruin of the world, forty years after the death of
Jesus. "I know not," as a man, or as an ambassador (Mark xiii. 32).
Jesus condemned by the Jews and the Gentiles.
The Jews and the Gentiles typified by the two sons. Aug. De civitate Dei, xx 29.
655
The six ages, the six Fathers of the six ages, the six wonders at the beginning of the
six ages, the six mornings at the beginning of the six ages.
656
Adam forma futuri. 2 The six days to form the one, the six ages to form the
other. The six days, which Moses represents for the formation of Adam, are only the
picture of the six ages to form Jesus Christ and the Church. If Adam had not sinned, and
Jesus Christ had not come, there had been only one covenant, only one age of men, and the
creation would have been represented as accomplished at one single time.
[Footnote 2: Romans, v. 14.]
657
Types. - The Jewish and Egyptian peoples were plainly foretold by the two individuals
whom Moses met.; the Egyptian beating the Jew, Moses avenging him and killing the
Egyptian, and the Jew being ungrateful.
658
The symbols of the Gospel for the state of the sick soul are sick bodies; but because
one body cannot be sick enough to express it well, several have been needed. Thus there
are the deaf, the dumb, the blind, the paralytic, the dead Lazarus, the possessed. All
this crowd is in the sick soul.
659
Types. - To show that the Old Testament is only figurative, and that the prophets
understood by temporal blessings other blessings, this is the proof:
First, that this would be unworthy of God.
Secondly, that their discourses express very clearly the promise of temporal blessings,
and that they say nevertheless that their discourses are obscure, and that their meaning
will not be understood. Whence it appears that this secret meaning was not that which they
openly expressed, and that consequently they meant to speak of other sacrifices, of
another deliverer, &c. They say that they will be understood only in the fulness of
time (Jer. xxx. ult.).
The third proof is that their discourses are contradictory, and neutralise each other;
so that if we think that they did not mean by the words "law" and
"sacrifice" anything else than that of Moses, there is a plain and gross
contradiction. Therefore they meant something else, sometimes contradicting themselves in
the same chapter. Now to understand the meaning of an author . . .
660
Lust has become natural to us, and has made our second nature. Thus there are two
natures in us - the one good, the other bad. Where is God? Where you are not, and the
kingdom of God is within you. The Rabbis.
661
Penitence, alone of all these mysteries, has been manifestly declared to the Jews, and
by Saint John, the Forerunner; and then the other mysteries; to indicate that in each man,
as in the entire world, this order must be observed.
662
The carnal Jews understood neither the greatness nor the humiliation of the Messiah
foretold in their prophecies. They misunderstood Him in His foretold greatness, as when He
said that the Messiah should be lord of David, though his son, and that He was before
Abraham, who had seen Him. They did not believe Him so great as to be eternal, and they
likewise misunderstood Him in His humiliation and in His death. "The Messiah,"
said they, "abideth for ever, and this man says that he shall die." Therefore
they believed Him neither mortal nor eterual; they only sought in Him for a carnal
greatness.
663
Typical. - Nothing is so like charity as covetousness, and nothing is so opposed to it.
Thus the Jews, full of possessions which flattered their covetousness, were very like
Christians, and very contrary. And by this means they had the two qualities which it was
necessary they should have, to be very like the Messiah to typify Him, and very contrary
not to be suspected witnesses.
664
Typical. - God made use of the lust of the Jews to make them minister to Jesus Christ,
[who brought the remedy for their lust].
665
Charity is not a figurative precept. It is dreadful to say that Jesus Christ, who came
to take away types in order to establish the truth, came only to establish the type of
charity, in order to take away the existing reality which was there before.
"If the light be darkness, how great is that darkness!"
666
Fascination. Somnum suum. 3 Figura hujus mundi. 4
The Eucharist. Comedes panem tuum. 5 Panem nostrum. 6
Inimici Dei terram lingent. 7 Sinners lick the dust, that is to say, love
earthly pleasures.
[Footnote 3: "Psalms, lxxvi. 5.]
[Footnote 4: "I Corinthians, vii. 31.]
[Footnote 5: "Deuteronomy, viii. 9.]
[Footnote 6: "Luke, xi. 3.]
[Footnote 7: Psalms, lxxii. 9.]
The Old Testament contained the types of future joy, and the New contains the means of
arriving at it. The types were of joy; the means of penitence; and nevertheless the
Paschal Lamb was eaten with bitter herbs, cum amaritudinibus. 8
[Footnote 8: Exodus, xii. 8.]
Singularis sum ego donec transeam. 9 - Jesus Christ before His death was
almost the only martyr.
[Footnote 9: Psalms, cxli. 10.]
667
Typical. - The expressions, sword, shield. Potentissime.
668
We are estranged, only by departing from charity. Our prayers and our virtues are
abominable before God, if they are not the prayers and the virtues of Jesus Christ. And
our sins will never be the object of [mercy], but of the justice of God, if they are not
[those of] Jesus Christ. He has adopted our sins, and has [admitted] us into union [with
Him], for virtues are [His own, and] sins are foreign to Him; while virtues [are] foreign
to us, and our sins are our own.
Let us change the rule which we have hitherto chosen for judging what is good. We had
our own will as our rule. Let us now take the will of [God]; all that He wills is good and
right to us, all that He does not will is [bad].
All that God does not permit is forbidden. Sins are forbidden by the general
declaration that God has made, that He did not allow them. Other things which He has left
without general prohibition, and which for that reason are said to be permitted, are
nevertheless not always permitted. For when God removes some one of them from us, and
when, by the event, which is a manifestation of the will of God, it appears that God does
not will that we should have a thing, that is then forbidden to us as sin; since the will
of God is that we should not have one more than another. There is this sole difference
between these two things, that it is certain that God will never allow sin, while it is
not certain that He will never allow the other. But so long as God does not permit it, we
ought to regard it as sin; so long as the absence of God's will, which alone is all
goodness and all justice, renders it unjust and wrong.
Part II
669
To change the type, because of our weakness.
670
Types. - The Jews had grown old in these earthly thoughts, that God loved their father
Abraham, his flesh and what sprung from it; that on account of this He had multiplied
them, and distinguished them from all other nations, without allowing them to intermingle;
that when they were languishing in Egypt, He brought them out with all these great signs
in their favour; that He fed them with manna in the desert, and led them into a very rich
land; that He gave them kings and a well-built temple, in order to offer up beasts before
Him, by the shedding of whose blood they should be purified; and that at last He was to
send them the Messiah to make them masters of all the world, and foretold the time of His
coming.
The world having grown old in these carnal errors, Jesus Christ came at the time
foretold, but not with the expected glory; and thus men did not think it was He. After His
death, Saint Paul came to teach men that all these things had happened in allegory; that
the kingdom of God did not consist in the flesh, but in the spirit; that the enemies of
men were not the Babylonians, but the passions; that God delighted not in temples made
with hands, but in a pure and contrite heart; that the circumcision of the body was
unprofitable, but that of the heart was needed; that Moses had not given them the bread
from heaven, &c.
But God, not having desired to reveal these things to this people who were unworthy of
them, and having nevertheless desired to foretell them, in order that they might be
believed, foretold the time clearly, and expressed the things sometimes clearly, but very
often in figures, in order that those who loved symbols might consider them, and those who
loved what was symbolized might see it therein.
All that tends not to charity is figurative.
The sole aim of the Scripture is charity.
All which tends not to the sole end is the type of it. For since there is only one end,
all which does not lead to it in express terms is figurative.
God thus varies that sole precept of charity to satisfy our curiosity, which seeks for
variety, by that variety which still leads us to the one thing needful. For one thing
alone is needful, and we love variety; and God satisfies both by these varieties, which
lead to the one thing needful.
The Jews have so much loved the shadows, and have so strictly expected them, that they
have misunderstood the reality, when it came in the time and manner foretold.
The Rabbis take the breasts of the Spouse for types, and all that does not express the
only end they have, namely, temporal good.
And Christians take even the Eucharist as a type of the glory at which they aim.
671
The Jews, who have been called to subdue nations and kings, have been the slaves of
sin; and the Christians, whose calling has been to be servants and subjects, are free
children.
672
A formal point. - When Saint Peter and the Apostles deliberated about abolishing
circumcision, where it was a question of acting against the law of God, they did not heed
the prophets, but simply the reception of the Holy Spirit in the persons uncircumcised.
They thought it more certain that God approved of those whom He filled with His Spirit,
than it was that the law must be obeyed. They knew that the end of the law was only the
Holy Spirit; and that thus, as men certainly had this without circumcision, it was not
necessary.
673
Fac secundum exemplar quod tibi ostensum est in monte. 10 - The Jewish
religion then has been formed on its likeness to the truth of the Messiah; and the truth
of the Messiah has been recognised by the Jewish religion, which was the type of it.
[Footnote 10: Exodus, xxv. 40.]
Among the Jews the truth was only typified; in heaven it is revealed.
In the Church it is hidden, and recognised by its resemblance to the type.
The type has been made according to the truth, and the truth has been recognised
according to the type.
Saint Paul says himself that people will forbid to marry, and he himself speaks of it
to the Corinthians in a way which is a snare. For if a prophet has said the one, and Saint
Paul had then said the other, he would have been accused.
674
Typical. - "Do all things according to the pattern which has been shown thee on
the mount." On which Saint Paul says that the Jews have shadowed forth heavenly
things.
675
...And yet this Covenant, made to blind some and enlighten others, indicated in those
very persons, whom it blinded, the truth which should be recognised by others. For the
visible blessings which they received from God were so great and so divine, that He indeed
appeared able to give them those that are invisible, and a Messiah.
For nature is an image of grace, and visible miracles are images of the invisible. Ut
sciatis ... tibi dico: Surge 11
[Footnote 11: Matthew, ix. 6.]
Isaiah says that Redemption will be as the passage of the Red Sea.
God has then shown by the deliverance from Egypt, and from the sea, by the defeat of
kings, by the manna, by the whole genealogy of Abraham, that He was able to save, to send
down bread from heaven, &c.; so that the people hostile to Him are the type and the
representation of the very Messiah whom they know not, &c.
He has then taught us at last that all these things were only types, and what is
"true freedom", a "true Israelite," "true circumcision,"
"true bread from heaven," &c.
In these promises each one finds what he has most at heart, temporal benefits or
spiritual, God or the creatures; but with this difference, that those who therein seek the
creatures find them, but with many contradictions, with a prohibition against loving them,
with the command to worship God only, and to love Him only, which is the same thing, and,
finally, that the Messiah came not for them; whereas those who therein seek God find Him,
without any contradiction, with the command to love Him only, and that the Messiah came in
the time foretold, to give them the blessings which they ask.
Thus the Jews had miracles and prophecies, which they saw fulfilled, and the teaching
of their law was to worship and love God only; it was also perpetual. Thus it had all the
marks of the true religion; and so it was. But the Jewish teaching must be distinguished
from the teaching of the Jewish law. Now the Jewish teaching was not true, although it had
miracles and prophecy and perpetuity, because it had not this other point of worshipping
and loving God only.
676
The veil, which is upon these books for the Jews, is there also for evil Christians,
and for all who do not hate themselves.
But how well disposed men are to understand them and to know Jesus Christ, when they
truly hate themselves!
677
A type conveys absence and presence, pleasure and pain.
A cipher has a double meaning, one clear, and one in which it is said that the meaning
is hidden.
678
Types. - A portrait conveys absence and presence, pleasure and pain. The reality
excludes absence and pain.
To know if the law and the sacrifices are a reality or a type, we must see if the
prophets, in speaking of these things, confined their view and their thought to them, so
that they saw only the old covenant; or if they saw therein something else of which they
were the representation, for in a portrait we see the thing figured. For this we need only
examine what they say of them.
When they say that it will be eternal, do they mean to speak of that covenant which
they say will be changed; and so of the sacrifices, &c.?
A cipher has two meanings. When we find out an important letter in which we discover a
clear meaning, and in which it is nevertheless said that the meaning is veiled and
obscure, that it is hidden, so that we might read the letter without seeing it, and
interpret it without understanding it, what must we think but that here is a cipher with a
double meaning, and the more so if we find obvious contradictions in the literal meaning?
The prophets have clearly said that Israel would be always loved by God, and that the law
would be eternal; and they have said that their meaning would not be understood, and that
it was veiled.
How greatly then ought we to value those who interpret the cipher, and teach us to
understand the hidden meaning, especially if the principles which they educe are perfectly
clear and natural! This is what Jesus Christ did, and the Apostles. They broke the seal;
He rent the veil, and revealed the spirit. They have taught us through this that the
enemies of man are his passions; that the Redeemer would be spiritual, and His reign
spiritual; that there would be two advents, one in lowliness to humble the proud, the
other in glory to exalt the humble; that Jesus Christ would be both God and man.
679
Types. - Jesus Christ opened their mind to understand the Scriptures.
Two great revelations are these. (1.) All things happened to them in types: vere
Israelitae, vere liberi, true bread from heaven. (2.) A God humbled to the Cross. It was
necessary that Christ should suffer in order to enter into glory, "that He should
destroy death through death." Two advents.
680
Types. - When once this secret is disclosed, it is impossible not to see it. Let us
read the Old Testament in this light, and let us see if the sacrifices were real; if the
fatherhood of Abraham was the true cause of the friendship of God; and if the promised
land was the true place of rest. No. They are therefore types. Let us in the same way
examine all those ordained ceremonies, all those commandments which are not of charity,
and we shall see that they are types.
All these sacrifices and ceremonies were then either types or nonsense. Now there are
things clear, and too lofty, to be thought nonsense.
To know if the prophets confined their view in the Old Testament, or saw therein other
things.
681
Typical. - The key of the cipher. Veri adoratores. 12 - Ecce agnus Dei qui
tollit peccata mundi. 13
[Footnote 12: John, iv. 23.]
[Footnote 13: John, i. 29.]
682
Is. i. 21. Change of good into evil, and the vengeance of God. Is. x. 1; xxvi. 20;
xxviii. i. Miracles: Is. xxxiii. 9; xl. 17; xli. 26; xliii. 13.
Jer. xi. 21; xv. 12; xvii. 9. Pravum est cor omnium et incrustabile; quis cognoscet
illud? that is to say, Who can know all its evil? For it is already known to be wicked.
Ego dominus, &c. - vii. 14. Faciam domui huic, &c. - Trust in external sacrifices
- vii. 22. Quia non sum locutus, &c. Outward sacrifice is not the essential point -
xi. 13. Secundum numerum, &c. A multitude of doctrines.
Is. xliv. 20-24; liv. 8; lxiii. 12-17; lxvi. 17. Jer. ii. 35; iv. 22-24; v. 4, 29-31;
vi. 16; xxiii. 15-17.
Types. - The letter kills. All happened in types. Here is the cipher which Saint Paul
gives us. Christ must suffer. An humiliated God. Circumcision of the heart, true fasting,
true sacrifice, a true temple. The prophets have shown that all these must be spiritual
Not the meat which perishes, but that which does not perish.
"Ye shall be free indeed." Then the other freedom was only a type of freedom.
"I am the true bread from Heaven."
684
Contradiction. - We can only describe a good character by reconciling all contrary
qualities, and it is not enough to keep up a series of harmonious qualities without
reconciling contradictory ones. To understand the meaning of an author, we must make all
the contrary passages agree.
Thus, to understand Scripture, we must have a meaning in which all the contrary
passages are reconciled. It is not enough to have one which suits many concurring
passages; but it is necessary to have one which reconciles even contradictory passages.
Every author has a meaning in which all the contradictory passages agree, or he has no
meaning at all. We cannot affirm the latter of Scripture and the prophets; they
undoubtedly are full of good sense. We must then seek for a meaning which reconciles all
discrepancies.
The true meaning then is not that of the Jews; but in Jesus Christ all the
contradictions are reconciled.
The Jews could not reconcile the cessation of the royalty and principality, foretold by
Hosea, with the prophecy of Jacob.
If we take the law, the sacrifices, and the kingdom as realities, we cannot reconcile
all the passages. They must then necessarily be only types. We cannot even reconcile the
passages of the same author, nor of the same book, nor sometimes of the same chapter,
which indicates copiously what was the meaning of the author. As when Ezekiel, chap. xx.,
says that man will live by the commandments of God and will not live by them.
685
Types. - If the law and the sacrifices are the truth, it must please God, and must not
displease Him. If they are types, they must be both pleasing and displeasing.
Now in all the Scripture they are both pleasing and displeasing. It is said that the
law shall be changed; that the sacrifice shall be changed; that they shall be without law,
without a prince, and without a sacrifice; that a new covenant shall be made; that the law
shall be renewed; that the precepts which they have received are not good; that their
sacrifices are abominable; that God has demanded none of them.
It is said, on the contrary, that the law shall abide for ever; that this covenant
shall be for ever; that sacrifice shall be eternal; that the sceptre shall never depart
from among them, because it shall not depart from them till the eternal King comes.
Do all these passages indicate what is real? No. Do they then indicate what is typical?
No, but what is either real or typical. But the first passages, excluding as they do
reality, indicate that all this is only typical.
All these passages together cannot be applied to reality; all can be said to be
typical; therefore they are not spoken of reality, but of the type.
Agnus occisus est ab origine mundi. 14 A sacrificing judge.
[Footnote 14: Revelation, xiii. 8.]
686
Contradictions. - The sceptre till the Messiah, - without king or prince.
The eternal law, - changed.
The eternal covenant, - a new covenant.
Good laws, - bad precepts, Ezekiel.
687
Types. - When the word of God, which is really true, is false literally, it is true
spiritually. Sede a dextris meis: 15 this is false literally, therefore it is
true spiritually.
[Footnote 15: Psalms, cx 1.]
In these expressions, God is spoken of after the manner of men; and this means nothing
else but that the intention which men have in giving a seat at their right hand, God will
have also. It is then an indication of the intention of God, not of His manner of carrying
it out.
Thus when it is said, "God has received the odour of your incense, and will in
recompense give you a rich land," that is equivalent to saying that the same
intention which a man would have, who, pleased with your perfumes, should in recompense
give you a rich land, God will have towards you, because you have had towards [Him] the
same intention as a man has towards him, to whom he presents perfumes. So iratus est, a
"jealous God," &c. For, the things of God being inexpressible, they cannot
be spoken of otherwise, and the Church makes use of them even to-day: Quia confortavit
seras, &c. 16.
[Footnote 16: Psalms, cxlvii. 13.]
It is not allowable to attribute to Scripture the meaning which it has not revealed to
us that it has. Thus, to say that the closed mem 17 of Isaiah signifies six
hundred, has not been revealed. It might be said that the final tsade and the he
deficientes may signify mysteries. But it is not allowable to say so, and still less to
say this is the way of the philosopher's stone. But we say that the literal meaning is not
the true meaning, because the prophets have themselves said so.
[Footnote 17: In allusion to certain features in Hebrew writing.]
688
I do not say that the mem is mystical.
689
Moses (Deut. xxx.) promises that God will circumcise their heart to render them capable
of loving Him.
690
One saying of David, or of Moses, as for instance that "God will circumcise the
heart," enables us to judge of their spirit. If all their other expressions were
ambiguous, and left us in doubt whether they were philosophers or Christians, one saying
of this kind would in fact determine all the rest, as one sentence of Epictetus decides
the meaning of all the rest to be the opposite. So far ambiguity exists, but not
afterwards.
691
If one of two persons, who are telling silly stories, uses language with a double
meaning, understood in his own circle, while the other uses it with only one meaning, any
one not in the secret, who hears them both talk in this manner, will pass upon them the
same judgment. But if afterwards, in the rest of their conversation one says angelic
things, and the other always dull common-places, he will judge that the one spoke in
mysteries, and not the other; the one having sufficiently shown that he is incapable of
such foolishness, and capable of being mysterious; and the other that he is incapable of
mystery, and capable of foolishness.
The Old Testament is a cipher.
692
There are some who see clearly that man has no other enemy than lust, which turns him
from God, and not God; and that he has no other good than God, and not a rich land. Let
those who believe that the good of man is in the flesh, and evil in what turns him away
from sensual pleasures, [satiate] themselves with them, and [die] in them. But let those
who seek God with all their heart, who are only troubled at not seeing Him, who desire
only to possess Him, and have as enemies only those who turn them away from Him, who are
grieved at seeing themselves surrounded and overwhelmed with such enemies, take comfort. I
proclaim to them happy news. There exists a Redeemer for them. I shall show Him to them. I
shall show that there is a God for them. I shall not show Him to others. I shall make them
see that a Messiah has been promised, who should deliver them from their enemies, and that
One has come to free them from their iniquities, but not from their enemies.
When David foretold that the Messiah would deliver His people from their enemies, one
can believe that in the flesh these would be the Egyptians; and then I cannot show that
the prophecy was fulfilled. But one can well believe also that the enemies would be their
sins; for indeed the Egyptians were not their enemies, but their sins were so. This word,
enemies, is therefore ambiguous. But if he says elsewhere, as he does, that He will
deliver His people from their sins, as indeed do Isaiah and others, the ambiguity is
removed, and the double meaning of enemies is reduced to the simple meaning of iniquities.
For if he had sins in his mind, he could well denote them as enemies; but if he thought of
enemies, he could not designate them as iniquities.
Now Moses, David, and Isaiah used the same terms. Who will say then that they have not
the same meaning, and that David's meaning, which is plainly iniquities when he spoke of
enemies, was not the same as [that of] Moses when speaking of enemies?
Daniel (Chap. ix.) prays for the deliverance of the people from the captivity of their
enemies. But he was thinking of sins, and to show this, he says that Gabriel came to tell
him that his prayer was heard, and that there were only seventy weeks to wait, after which
the people would be freed from iniquity, sin would have an end, and the Redeemer, the Holy
of Holies, would bring eternal justice, not legal, but eternal.
Section XI
Part I
The Prophecies
693
When I see the blindness and the wretchedness of man, when I regard the whole silent
universe, and man without light, left to himself, and, as it were, lost in this corner of
the universe, without knowing who has put him there, what he has come to do, what will
become of him at death, and incapable of all knowledge, I become terrified, like a man who
should be carried in his sleep to a dreadful desert island, and should awake without
knowing where he is, and without means of escape. And thereupon I wonder how people in a
condition so wretched do not fall into despair. I see other persons around me of a like
nature. I ask them if they are better informed than I am. They tell me that they are not.
And thereupon these wretched and lost beings, having looked around them, and seen some
pleasing objects, have given and attached themselves to them. For my own part, I have not
been able to attach myself to them, and, considering how strongly it appears that there is
something else than what I see, I have examined whether this God has not left some sign of
Himself.
I see many contradictory religions, and consequently all false save one. Each wants to
be believed on its own authority, and threatens unbelievers. I do not therefore believe
them. Every one can say this; every one can call himself a prophet. But I see the
Christian religion wherein prophecies are fulfilled; and that is what every one cannot do.
694
And what crowns all this is prediction, so that it should not be said that it is chance
which has done it.
Whosoever, having only a week to live, will not find out that it is expedient to
believe that all this is not a stroke of chance . . .
Now, if the passions had no hold on us, a week and a hundred years would amount to the
same thing.
695
Prophecies. - Great Pan is dead.
696
Susceperunt verbum cum omni aviditate, scrutantes Scripturas, si ita se haberent. 1
[Footnote 1: Acts, xvii. II.]
697
Prodita lege. - Impleta cerne. - Implenda collige. 2
[Footnote 2: "Read what has been handed down. - Note what has been fulfilled. -
Bring together what is to be fulfilled."]
698
We understand the prophecies only when we see the events happen. Thus the proofs of
retreat, discretion, silence, &c., are proofs only to those who know and believe them.
Joseph so internal in a law so external.
Outward penances dispose to inward, as humiliations to humility. Thus the . . .
699
The synagogue has preceded the church; the Jews, the Christians. The prophets have
foretold the Christians; Saint John, Jesus Christ.
700
It is glorious to see with the eyes of faith the history of Herod and of Caesar.
701
The zeal of the Jews for their law and their temple (Josephus, and Philo the Jew, ad
Caium). What other people had such a zeal? It was necessary they should have it.
Jesus Christ foretold as to the time and the state of the world. The ruler taken from
the thigh, and the fourth monarchy. How lucky we are to see this light amidst this
darkness!
How fine it is to see, with the eyes of faith, Darius and Cyrus, Alexander the Romans,
Pompey and Herod working, without knowing it, for the glory of the Gospel!
702
Zeal of the Jewish people for the law, especially after there were no more prophets.
703
While the prophets were for maintaining the law, the people were indifferent. But since
there have been no more prophets, zeal has succeeded them.
704
The devil troubled the zeal of the Jews before Jesus Christ, because he would have been
their salvation, but not since.
The Jewish people scorned by the Gentiles; the Christian people persecuted.
705
Proof. - Prophecies with their fulfilment; what has preceded and what has followed
Jesus Christ.
706
The prophecies are the strongest proof of Jesus Christ. It is for them also that God
has made most provision; for the event which has fulfilled them is a miracle existing
since the birth of the Church to the end. So God has raised up prophets during sixteen
hundred years, and, during four hundred years afterwards, He has scattered all these
prophecies among all the Jews, who carried them into all parts of the world. Such was the
preparation for the birth of Jesus Christ, and, as His Gospel was to be believed by all
the world, it was not only necessary that there should be prophecies to make it believed,
but that these prophecies should exist throughout the whole world, in order to make it
embraced by the whole world.
707
But it was not enough that the prophecies should exist. It was necessary that they
should be distributed throughout all places, and preserved throughout all times. And in
order that this agreement might not be taken for an effect of chance, it was necessary
that this should be foretold.
It is far more glorious for the Messiah that the Jews should be the spectators, and
even instruments of His glory, besides that God had reserved them.
708
Prophecies. - The time foretold by the state of the Jewish people, by the state of the
heathen, by the state of the temple, by the number of years.
709
One must be bold to predict the same thing in so many ways. It was necessary that the
four idolatrous or pagan monarchies, the end of the kingdom of Judah, and the seventy
weeks, should happen at the same time, and all this before the second temple was
destroyed.
710
Prophecies. - If one man alone had made a book of predictions about Jesus Christ, as to
the time and the manner, and Jesus Christ had come in conformity to these prophecies, this
fact would have infinite weight.
But there is much more here. Here is a succession of men during four thousand years,
who, constantly and without variation, come, one after another, to foretell this same
event. Here is a whole people who announce it, and who have existed for four thousand
years, in order to give corporate testimony of the assurances which they have, and from
which they cannot be diverted by whatever threats and persecutions people may make against
them. This is far more important.
711
Predictions of particular things. - They were strangers in Egypt, without any private
property, either in that country or elsewhere. [There was not the least appearance, either
of the royalty which had previously existed so long, or of that supreme council of seventy
judges which they called the Sanhedrin, and which, having been instituted by Moses, lasted
to the time of Jesus Christ. All these things were as far removed from their state at that
time as they could be,] when Jacob, dying, and blessing his twelve children, declared to
them, that they would be proprietors of a great land, and foretold in particular to the
family of Judah, that the kings, who would one day rule them, should be of this race; and
that all his brethren should be their subjects; [and that even Messiah, who was to be the
expectation of nations, should spring from him; and that the kingship should not be taken
away from Judah, nor the ruler and law giver of his descendants, till the expected Messiah
should arrive in his family.]
This same Jacob, disposing of this future land as though he had been its ruler, gave a
portion to Joseph more than to the others. "I give you," said he, "one part
more than to your brothers." And blessing his two children, Ephraim and Manasseh,
whom Joseph had presented to him, the elder, Manasseh, on his right, and the young Ephraim
on his left, he put arms crosswise, and placing his right hand on the head of Ephraim, and
his left on Manasseh, he blessed them in this manner. And, upon Joseph's representing to
him that he was preferring the younger, he replied to him with admirable resolution:
"I know it well, my son; but Ephraim will increase more than Manasseh." This has
been indeed so true in the result, that, being alone almost as fruitful as the two entire
lines, which composed a whole kingdom, they have been usually called by the name of
Ephraim alone.
This same Joseph, when dying, bade his children carry his bones with them when they
should go into the land, to which they only came two hundred years afterwards.
Moses, who wrote all these things so long before they happened, himself assigned to
each family portions of that land before they entered it, as though he had been its ruler.
[In fact he declared that God was to raise up from their nation and their race a prophet,
of whom he was the type; and he foretold them exactly all that was to happen to them in
the land which they were to enter after his death, the victories which God would give
them, their ingratitude towards God, the punishments which they would receive for it, and
the rest of their adventures.] He gave them judges who should make the division. He
prescribed the entire form of political government which they should observe, the cities
of refuge which they should build, and...
712
The prophecies about particular things are mingled with those about the Messiah, so
that the prophecies of the Messiah should not be without proofs, nor the special
prophecies without fruit.
713
Perpetual captivity of the Jews. - Jer xi. II: "I will bring evil upon Judah from
which they shall not be able to escape."
Types. - Is. v.: "The Lord had a vineyard, from which He looked for grapes; and it
brought forth only wild grapes. I will therefore lay it waste, and destroy it; the earth
shall only bring forth thorns, and I will forbid the clouds from [raining] upon it. The
vineward of the Lord is the house of Israel, and the men of Judah His pleasant plant. I
looked that they should do justice, and they bring forth only iniquities."
Is. viii.: "Sanctify the Lord with fear and trembling; let Him be your only dread,
and He shall be to you for a sanctuary, but for a stone of stumbling and a rock of offence
to both the houses of Israel, for a gin and for a snare to the inhabitants of Jerusalem;
and many among then shall stumble against that stone, and fall, and be broken, and be
snared, and perish. Hide my words, and cover my law for my disciples.
"I will then wait in patience upon the Lord that hideth and concealeth Himself
from the house of Jacob."
Is. xxix.: "Be amazed and wonder, people of Israel; stagger and stumble, and be
drunken, but not with wine; stagger, but not with strong drink. For the Lord hath poured
out upon you the spirit of deep sleep. He will close your eyes; He will cover your princes
and your prophets that have visions." (Daniel xii.: "The wicked shall not
understand, but the wise shall understand." Hosea, the last chapter, the last verse,
after many temporal blessings, says: "Who is wise, and he shall understand these
things, &c.?") "And the visions of all the prophets are become unto you as a
sealed book, which men deliver to one that is learned, and who can read; and he saith, I
cannot read it, for it is sealed. And when the book is delivered to them that are not
learned, they say, I am not learned.
"Wherefore the Lord said, Forasmuch as this people with their lips do honour me,
but have removed their heart far from me," - there is the reason and the cause of it;
for if they adored God in their hearts, they would understand the prophecies, - "and
their fear towards me is taught by the precept of man. Therefore, behold, I will proceed
to do a marvellous work among this people, even a marvellous work and a wonder; for the
wisdom of their wise men shall perish, and their understanding shall be [hid]."
Prophecies. Proofs of Divinity. - Is. xli.: "Shew the things that are to come
hereafter, that we may know that ye are gods: we will incline our heart unto your words.
Teach us the things that have been at the beginning, and declare us things for to come.
"By this we shall know that ye are gods. Yea, do good or do evil, if you can. Let
us then behold it and reason together. Behold, ye are of nothing, and only an abomination,
&c. Who," (among contemporary writers), "hath declared from the beginning
that we may know of the things done from the beginning and origin? that we may say, You
are righteous. There is none that teacheth us, yea, there is none that declareth the
future."
Is. xlii.: "I am the Lord, and my glory will I not give to another. I have
foretold the things which have come to pass, and things that are to come do I declare.
Sing unto God a new song in all the earth.
"Bring forth the blind people that have eyes and see not, and the deaf that have
ears and hear not. Let all the nations be gathered together. Who among them can declare
this, and shew us former things, and things to come? Let them bring forth their witnesses,
that they may be justified; or let them hear, and say, It is truth.
"Ye are my witnesses, saith the Lord, and my servant whom I have chosen; that ye
may know and believe me, and understand that I am He.
"I have declared, and have saved, and I alone have done wonders before your eyes:
ye are my witnesses, said the Lord, that I am God.
"For your sake I have brought down the forces of the Babylonians. I am the Lord,
your Holy One and creator.
"I have made a way in the sea, and a path in the mighty waters. I am He that
drowned and destroyed for ever the mighty enemies that have resisted you.
"Remember ye not the former things, neither consider the things of old.
"Behold, I will do a new thing; now it shall spring forth; shall ye not know it? I
will even make a way in the wilderness, and rivers in the desert.
"This people have I formed for myself; I have established them to shew forth my
praise, &c.
"I, even I, am He that blotteth out thy transgressions for mine own sake, and will
not remember thy sins. Put in remembrance your ingratitude: see thou, if thou mayest be
justified. Thy first father hath sinned, and thy teachers have transgressed against
me."
Is. xliv.: "I am the first, and I am the last, saith the Lord. Let him who will
equal himself to me, declare the order of things since I appointed the ancient people, and
the things that are coming. Fear ye not: have I not told you all these things? Ye are my
witnesses."
Prophecy of Cyrus. - Is. xlv. 4: "For Jacob's sake, mine elect, I have called thee
by thy name."
Is. xlv. 21: "Come and let us reason together. Who hath declared this from ancient
time? Who hath told it from that time? Have not I, the Lord?"
Is. xlvi.: "Remember the former things of old, and know there is none like me,
declaring the end from the beginning, and from ancient times the things that are not yet
done, saying, My counsel shall stand, and I will do all my pleasure."
Is. xlii.: "Behold, the former things are come to pass, and new things do I
declare; before they spring forth I tell you of them."
Is. xlviii. 3: "I have declared the former things from the beginning; I did them
suddenly; and they came to pass. Because I know that thou art obstinate, that thy spirit
is rebellious, and thy brow brass; I have even declared it to thee before it came to pass:
lest thou shouldst say that it was the work of thy gods, and the effect of their commands.
"Thou hast seen all this; and will not ye declare it? I have shewed thee new
things from this time, even hidden things, and thou didst not know them. They are created
now, and not from the beginning; I have kept them hidden from thee; lest thou shouldst
say, Behold, I knew them.
Yea, thou knewest not; yea, thou heardest not; yea, from that time that thine ear was
not opened: for I knew that thou wouldst deal very treacherously, and wast called a
transgressor from the womb."
Reprobation of the Jews and conversion of the Gentiles. - Is. lxv.: "I am sought
of them that asked not for me; I am found of them that sought me not: I said, Behold me,
behold me, unto a nation that did not call upon my name.
"I have spread out my hands all the day unto an unbelieving people, which walketh
in a way that was not good, after their own thoughts; a people that provoketh me to anger
continually by the sins they commit in my face; that sacrificeth to idols, &c.
"These shall be scattered like smoke in the day of my wrath, &c.
"Your iniquities, and the iniquities of your fathers, will I assemble together,
and will recompense you for all according to your works.
"Thus saith the Lord, As the new wine is found in the cluster, and one saith,
Destroy it not, for a blessing is in it [and the promise of fruit]: for my servants' sake
I will not destroy all Israel.
"Thus I will bring forth a seed out of Jacob and out of Judah, an inheritor of my
mountains, and mine elect and my servants shall inherit it, and my fertile and abundant
plains; but I will destroy all others, because you have forgotten your God to serve
strange gods. I called, and ye did not answer; I spake, and ye did not hear; and ye did
choose the thing which I forbade.
"Therefore thus saith the Lord, Behold, my servants shall eat, but ye shall be
hungry; my servants shall rejoice, but ye shall be ashamed; my servants shall sing for joy
of heart, but ye shall cry and howl for vexation of spirit.
"And ye shall leave your name for a curse unto my chosen: for the Lord shall slay
thee, and call His servants by another name, that he who blesseth himself in the earth
shall bless himself in God, &c., because the former troubles are forgotten.
"For, behold, I create new heavens and a new earth; and the former things shall
not be remembered, nor come into mind.
"But be ye glad and rejoice for ever in that which I create; for, behold, I create
Jerusalem a rejoicing, and her people a joy.
"And I will rejoice in Jerusalem and joy in my people; and the voice of weeping
shall no more be heard in her, nor the voice of crying.
"Before they call, I will answer; and while they are yet speaking, I will hear.
The wolf and the lamb shall feed together, and the lion shall eat straw like the bullock;
and dust shall be the serpent's meat. They shall not hurt nor destroy in all my holy
mountain."
Is. lvi.3: "Thus saith the Lord, keep ye judgment, and do justice: for my
salvation is near to come, and my righteousness to be revealed.
"Blessed is the man that doeth this, that keepeth the Sabbath, and keepeth his
hand from doing any evil.
"Neither let the strangers that have joined themselves to me, say, God will
separate me from His people. For thus saith the Lord: Whoever will keep my Sabbath, and
choose the things that please me, and take hold of my covenant; even unto them will I give
in mine house a place and a name better than that of sons and of daughters: I will give
them an everlasting name, that shall not be cut off."
Is. lix. 9: "Therefore for our iniquities is justice far from us: we wait for
light, but behold obscurity; for brightness, but we walk in darkness. We grope for the
wall like the blind; we stumble at noon day as in the night: we are in desolate places as
dead men.
"We roar all like bears, and mourn sore like doves; we look for judgment, but
there is none; for salvation, but it is far from us."
Is. lxvi. 18: "But I know their works and their thoughts; it shall come that I
will gather all nations and tongues, and they shall see my glory.
"And I will set a sign among them, and I will send tfose that escape of them unto
the nations, to Africa, to Lydia, to Italy, to Greece, and to the people that have not
heard my fame, neither have seen my glory. And they shall bring your brethren."
Jer. vii. Reprobation of the Temple: "Go ye unto Shiloth, where I set my name at
the first, and see what I did to it for the wickedness of my people. And now, because ye
have done all these works, saith the Lord, I will do unto this house, wherein my name is
called upon, wherein ye trust, and unto the place which I gave to your priests, as I have
done to Shiloth." (For I have rejected it, and made myself a temple elsewhere.)
"And I will cast you out of my sight, as I have cast out all your brethren, even
the seed of Ephraim." (Rejected for ever.) "Therefore pray not for this
people."
Jer. vii. 22: "What avails it you to add sacrifice to sacrifice? For I spake not
unto your fathers, when I brought them out of the land of Egypt, concerning burnt
offerings or sacrifices. But this thing commanded I them, saying, Obey and be faithful to
my commandments, and I will be your God, and ye shall be my people." (It was only
after they had sacrificed to the golden calf that I gave myself sacrifices to turn into
good an evil custom.)
Jer. vii. 4: "Trust ye not in lying words, saying, The temple of the Lord, the
temple of the Lord, the temple of the Lord, are these."
714
The Jews witnesses for God. Is. xliii. 9; xliv. 8.
Prophecies fulfilled. - 1 Kings, xiii. 2. - 1 Kings, xxiii. 16. - Jos. vi. 26. - 1
Kings, xvi. 34. - Deut. xxiii.
Malachi i. II. The sacrifice of the Jews rejected, and the sacrifice of the heathen,
(even out of Jerusalem,) and in all places.
Moses, before dying, foretold the calling of the Gentiles, Deut, xxxii. 21, and the
reprobation of the Jews.
Moses foretold what would happen to each tribe.
Prophecy. - "Your name shall be a curse unto mine elect, and I will give them
another name."
"Make their heart fat," and how? by flattering their lust and making them
hope to satisfy it.
715
Prophecy. - Amos and Zechariah. They have sold the just one, and therefore will not be
recalled. - Jesus Christ betrayed.
They shall no more remember Egypt. See Is. xliii. 16, 17, 18, 19. Jerem. xxiii. 6, 7.
Prophecy. - The Jews shall be scattered abroad. Is. xxvii. 6. - A new law, Jerem. xxxi.
32.
Malachi. Grotius. - The second temple glorious. - Jesus Christ will come. (Haggai, ii.
7, 8, 9, 10.)
The calling of the Gentiles. Joel, ii. 28. Hosea, ii. 24. Deut. xxxii. 21. Malachi, i.
11.
Part II
716
Hosea, iii. - Is. xlii., xlviii., liv., lx., lxi., last verse. "I foretold it long
since that they might know that it is I." Jaddus to Alexander.
717
[Prophecies. - The promise that David will always have descendants. Jer. xiii. 13.]
718
The external reign of the race of David, 2 Chron., by all the prophecies, and with an
oath. And it was not temporally fulfilled. Jerem. xxiii. 20.
719
We might perhaps think that, when the prophets foretold that the sceptre should not
depart from Judah until the eternal King came, they spoke to flatter the people, and that
their prophecy was proved false by Herod. But to show that this was not their meaning, and
that, on the contrary, they knew well that this temporal kingdom should cease, they said
that they would be without a king and without a prince, and for a long time. Hosea iii. 4.
720
Non habemus regem nisi Caesarem. 3 Therefore Jesus Christ was the Messiah,
since they had no longer any king but a stranger, and would have no other.
[Footnote 3: John, xix. 15.]
721
We have no king but Caesar.
722
Daniel ii.: "All thy soothsayers and wise men cannot show unto thee the secret
which thou hast demanded. But there is a God in heaven who can do so, and hath revealed to
thee in thy dream what shall be in the latter days." (This dream must have caused him
much misgiving.)
"And it is not by my own wisdom that I have knowledge of this secret, but by the
revelation of this same God, that hath revealed it to me, to make it manifest in thy
presence.
"Thy dream was then of this kind. Thou sawest a great image, high and terrible,
which stood before thee. His head was of gold, his breast and arms of silver, his belly
and his thighs of brass, his legs of iron, his feet part of iron and part of clay. Thus
thou sawest till that a stone was cut out without hands, which smote the image upon his
feet, that were of iron and of clay, and brake them to pieces.
"Then was the iron, the clay, the brass, the silver, and the gold broken to pieces
together, and the wind carried them away; but this stone that smote the image became a
great mountain, and filled the whole earth. This is the dream, and now I will give thee
the interpretation thereof.
"Thou who art the greatest of kings, and to whom God hath given a power so vast
that thou art renowned among all people, art the head of gold which thou hast seen. But
after thee shall arise another kingdom inferior to thee, and another third kingdom of
brass, which shall bear rule over all the earth.
"But the fourth kingdom shall be strong as iron, and even as iron breaketh in
pieces and subdueth all things, so shall this empire break in pieces and bruise all.
"And whereas thou sawest the feet and toes, part of clay and part of iron, the
kingdom shall be divided; but there shall be in it of the strength of iron and of the
weakness of clay.
"But as iron cannot be firmly mixed with clay, so they who are represented by the
iron and by the clay, shall not cleave one to another though united by marriage.
"Now in the days of these kings shall God set up a kingdom, which shall never be
destroyed, nor ever be delivered up to other people. It shall break in pieces and consume
all these kingdoms, and it shall stand for ever, according as thou sawest that the stone
was cut out of the mountain without hands, and that it fell from the mountain, and brake
in pieces, the iron, the clay, the silver, and the gold. God hath made known to thee what
shall come to pass hereafter. This dream is certain, and the interpretation thereof sure.
"Then Nebuchadnezzar fell upon his face towards the earth," &c.
Daniel viii. 8. "Daniel having seen the combat of the ram and of the he-goat, who
vanquished him and ruled over the earth, whereof the principal horn being broken four
others came up toward the four winds of heaven, and out of one of them came forth a little
horn, which waxed exceeding great toward the south, and toward the east, and toward the
land of Israel, and it waxed great even to the host of heaven; and it cast down some of
the stars, and stamped upon them, and at last overthrew the prince, and by him the daily
sacrifice was taken away, and the place of his sanctuary was cast down.
"This is what Daniel saw. He sought the meaning of it, and a voice cried in this
manner, 'Gabriel, make this man to understand the vision.' And Gabriel said
"The ram which thou sawest is the king of the Medes and Persians, and the he-goat
is the king of Greece, and the great horn that is between his eyes is the first king of
this monarchy.
"Now that being broken, whereas four stood up for it, four kingdoms shall stand up
out of the nation, but not in his power.
"And in the latter time of their kingdom, when iniquities are come to the full,
there shall arise a king, insolent and strong, but not by his own power, to whom all
things shall succeed after his own will; and he shall destroy the holy people, and through
his policy also he shall cause craft to prosper in his hand, and he shall destroy many. He
shall also stand up against the Prince of princes, but he shall perish miserably, and
nevertheless by a violent hand."
Daniel ix. 20. "Whilst I was praying with all my heart, and confessing my sin and
the sin of all my people, and prostrating myself before my God, even Gabriel, whom I had
seen in the vision at the beginning, came to me and touched me about the time of the
evening oblation, and he informed me and said, O Daniel, I am now come forth to give thee
the knowledge of things. At the beginning of thy supplications I came to shew that which
thou didst desire, for thou art greatly beloved: therefore understand the matter, and
consider the vision. Seventy weeks are determined upon thy people, and upon thy holy city,
to finish the transgression, and to make an end of sins, and to abolish iniquity, and to
bring in everlasting righteousness;to accomplish the vision and the prophecies, and to
anoint the Most Holy. (After which this people shall be no more thy people, nor this city
the holy city. The times of wrath shall be passed, and the years of grace shall come for
ever.)
"Know therefore, and understand, that, from the going forth of the commandment to
restore and to build Jerusalem unto the Messiah the Prince, shall be seven weeks, and
three score and two weeks." (The Hebrews were accustomed to divide numbers, and to
place the small first. Thus, 7 and 62 make 69. Of this 70 there will then remain the 70th,
that is to say, the 7 last years of which he will speak next.)
"The street shall be built again, and the wall, even in troublous times. And after
three score and two weeks," (which have followed the first seven. Christ will then be
killed after the sixty-nine weeks, that is to say, in the last week), "the Christ
shall be cut off, and a people of the prince that shall come shall destroy the city and
the sanctuary, and overwhelm all, and the end of that war shall accomplish the desolation.
"Now one week," (which is the seventieth, which remains), "shall confirm
the covenant with many, and in the midst of the week," (that is to say, the last
three and a half years), "he shall cause the sacrifice and the oblation to cease, and
for the overspreading of abominations he shall make it desolate, even until the
consummation, and that determined shall be poured upon the desolate."
Daniel, xi. The angel said to Daniel: "There shall stand up yet," (after
Cyrus, under whom this still is), "three kings in Persia," (Cambyses, Smyrdis,
Darius); "and the fourth who shall then come," (Xerxes) "shall be far
richer than they all, and far stronger, and shall stir up all his people against the
Greeks.
"But a mighty king shall stand up," (Alexander), "that shall rule with
great dominion, and do according to his will. And when he shall stand up, his kingdom
shall be broken, and shall be divided in four parts toward the four winds of heaven,"
(as he had said above, vi, 6, viii. 8), "but not his posterity; and his successors
shall not equal his power, for his kingdom shall be plucked up, even for others besides
these," (his four chief successors).
"And the king of the south," (Ptolemy, son of Lagos, Egypt), "shall be
strong; but one of his princes shall be strong above him, and his dominion shall be a
great dominion," (Seleucus, King of Syria. Appian says that he was the most powerful
of Alexander's successors).
"And in the end of years they shall join themselves together, and the king's
daughter of the south," (Berenice, daughter of Ptolemy Philadelphus, son of the other
Ptolemy), "shall come to the king of the north," (to Antiochus Deus, King of
Syria and of Asia, son of Seleucus Lagidas), "to make peace between these princes.
"But neither she nor her seed shall have a long authority; for she and they that
brought her, and her children, and her friends, shall be delivered to death."
(Berenice and her son were killed by Seleucus Callinicus.)
"But out of a branch of her roots shall one stand up," (Ptolemy Euergetes was
the issue of the same father as Berenice), "which shall come with a mighty army into
the land of the king of the north, where he shall put all under subjection, and he shall
also carry captive into Egypt their gods, their princes, their gold, their silver, and all
their precious spoils," (if he had not been called into Egypt by domestic reasons,
says Justin, he would have entirely stripped Seleucus); "and he shall continue
several years when the king of the north can do nought against him.
"And so he shall return into his kingdom. But his sons shall be stirred up, and
shall assemble a multitude of great forces," (Seleucus Ceraunus, Antiochus the
Great). "And their army shall come and overthrow all; wherefore the king of the south
shall be moved with choler, and shall also form a great army, and fight him,"
(Ptolemy Philopator against Antiochus the Great at Raphia), "and conquer; and his
troops shall become insolent, and his heart shall be lifted up," (this Ptolemy
desecrated the temple: Josephus): "he shall cast down many ten thousands, but he
shall not be strengthened by it. For the king of the north," (Antiochus the Great),
"shall return with a greater multitude than before, and in those times also a great
number of enemies shall stand up against the kind of the south," (during the reign of
the young Ptolemy Epiphanes), "also the apostates and robbers of thy people shall
exalt themselves to establish the vision; but they shall fall." (Those who abandon
their religion to please Euergetes, when he will send his troops to Scopas; for Antiochus
will again take Scopas, and conquer them.) "And the king of the north shall destroy
the fenced cities, and the arms of the south shall not withstand, and all shall yield to
his will; he shall stand in the land of Israel, and it shall yield to him. And thus he
shall think to make himself master of all the empire of Egypt," (despising the youth
of Epiphanes, says Justin). "And for that he shall make alliance with him, and give
his daughter," (Cleopatra, in order that she may betray her husband. On which Appian
says the doubting his ability to make himself master of Egypt by force, because of the
protection of the Romans, he wished to attempt it by cunning.) "He shall wish to
corrupt her, but she shall not stand on his side, neither be for him. Then he shall turn
his face to other designs, and shall think to make himself master of some isles,"
(that is to say, seaports), "and shall take many," (as Appian says).
"But a prince shall oppose his conquests," (Scipio Africanus, who stopped the
progress of Antiochus the Great, because he offended the Romans in the person of their
allies), "and shall cause the reproach offered by him to cease. He shall then return
into his kingdom and there perish, and be no more." (He was slain by his soldiers.)
"And he who shall stand up in his estate," (Seleucus Philopator or Soter, the
son of Antiochus the Great), "shall be a tyrant, a raiser of taxes in the glory of
the kingdom," (which means the people), "but within a few days he shall be
destroyed, neither in anger nor in battle. And in his place shall stand up a vile person,
unworthy of the honour of the kingdom, but he shall come in cleverly by flatteries. All
armies shall bend before him; he shall conquer them, and even the prince with whom he has
made a covenant. For having renewed the league with him, he shall work deceitfully, and
enter with a small people into his province, peaceably and without fear. He shall take the
fattest places, and shall do that which his fathers have not done, and revage on all
sides. He shall forecast great devices during his time."
723
Prophecies. - The seventy weeks of Daniel are ambiguous as regards the term of
commencement, because of the terms of the prophecy; and as regards the term of conclusion,
because of the differences among chronologists. But all this difference extends only to
two hundred years.
724
Predictions. - That in the fourth monarchy, before the destruction of the second
temple, before the dominion of the Jews was taken away, in the seventieth week of Daniel,
during the continuance of the second temple, the heathen should be instructed, and brought
to the knowledge of the God worshipped by the Jews; that those who loved Him should be
delivered from their enemies, and filled with His fear and love.
And it happened that in the fourth monarchy, before the destruction of the second
temple, &c., the heathen in great number worshipped God, and led an angelic life.
Maidens dedicated their virginity and their life to God. Men renounced their pleasures.
What Plato could only make acceptable to a few men, specially chosen and instructed, a
secret influence imparted, by the power of a few words, to a hundred million ignorant men.
The rich left their wealth. Children left the dainty homes of their parents to go into
the rough desert. (See Philo the Jew.) All this was foretold a great while ago. For two
thousand years no heathen had worshipped the God of the Jew; and at the time foretold, a
great number of the heathen worshipped this only God. The temples were destroyed. The very
kings made submission to the cross. All this was due to the Spirit of God, which was
spread abroad upon the earth.
No heathen, since Moses until Jesus Christ, believed according to the very Rabbis. A
great number of the heathen, after Jesus Christ, believed in the books of Moses, kept them
in substance and spirit, and only rejected what was useless.
725
Prophecies. - The conversion of the Egyptians (Is., xix. 19); an altar in Egypt to the
true God.
Part III
726
Prophecies. - In Egypt. - Pugio Fidei, p. 659. Talmud.
"It is a tradition among us, that, when the Messiah shall come, the house of God,
destined for the dispensation of His Word, shall be full of filth and impurity; and that
the wisdom of the scribes shall be corrupt and rotten. Those who shall be afraid to sin,
shall be rejected by the people, and treated as senseless fools."
Is. xlix.: "Listen, O isles, unto me, and hearken, ye people, from afar: The Lord
hath called me by my name from the womb of my mother; in the shadow of His hand hath He
hid me, and hath made my words like a sharp sword, and said unto me, Thou art my servant
in whom I will be glorified. Then I said, Lord, have I laboured in vain? have I spent my
strength for nought? yet surely my judgment is with Thee, O Lord, and my work with Thee.
And now, saith the Lord, that formed me from the womb to be His servant, to bring Jacob
and Israel again to Him: Thou shalt be glorious in my sight, and I will be thy strength.
It is a light thing that thou shouldst convert the tribes of Jacob; I have raised thee up
for a light to the Gentiles, that thou mayest be my salvation unto the ends of the earth.
Thus saith the Lord to him whom man despiseth, to him whom the nation abhorreth, to a
servant of rulers. Princes and kings shall worship thee, because the Lord is faithful that
hath chosen thee.
"Again saith the Lord unto me, I have heard thee in the days of salvation and of
mercy, and I will preserve thee for a covenant of the people, to cause to inherit the
desolate nations, that thou mayest say to the prisoners: Go forth; to them that are in
darkness show yourselves, and possess these abundant and fertile lands. They shall not
hunger nor thirst, neither shall the heat nor sun smite them; for he that hath mercy upon
them shall lead them, even by the springs of waters shall he guide them, and make the
mountains a way before them. Behold, the peoples shall come from all parts, from the east
and from the west, from the north and from the south. Let the heavens give glory to God;
let the earth be joyful; for it hath pleased the Lord to comfort His people, and He will
have mercy upon the poor who hope in Him.
"Yet Zion dared to say: The Lord hath forsaken me, and hath forgotten me. Can a
woman forget her child, that she should not have compassion on the son of her womb? but if
she forget, yet will not I forget thee, O Zion. I will bear thee always between my hands,
and thy walls are continually before me. They that shall build thee are come, and thy
destroyers shall go forth of thee. Lift up thine eyes round about, and behold; all these
gather themselves together, and come to thee. As I live, saith the Lord, thou shalt surely
clothe thee with them all, as with an ornament, thy waste and thy desolate places, and the
land of thy destruction, shall even now be too narrow by reason of the inhabitants, and
the children thou shalt have after thy barrenness shall say again in thy ears: The place
is too strait for me: give place to me that I may dwell. Then shalt thou say in thy heart:
who hath begotten me these, seeing I have lost my children, and am desolate, a captive,
and removing to and fro? and who brought up these? Behold, I was left alone; there, where
had they been? And the Lord shall say to thee: Behold, I will lift up mine hand to the
Gentiles, and set up my standard to the people; and they shall bring thy sons in their
arms and in their bosoms. And kings shall be their nursing fathers, and queens their
nursing mothers: they shall bow down to thee with their face toward the earth, and lick up
the dust of thy feet; and thou shalt know that I am the Lord; for they shall not be
ashamed that wait for me. Shall the prey be taken from the mighty? But even if the
captives be taken away from the strong, nothing shall hinder me from saving thy children,
and from destroying thy enemies; and all flesh shall know that I am the Lord, thy Saviour
and thy Redeemer, the mighty One of Jacob.
"Thus saith the Lord: What is the bill of this divorcement, where with I have put
away the synagogue? and why have I delivered it into the hands of your enemies? Is it not
for your iniquities and for your transgressions that I have put it away?
"For I came, and no man received me; I called, and there was none to hear. Is my
arm shortened that I cannot redeem?
"Therefore I will show the tokens of mine anger; I will clothe the heavens with
darkness, and make sack cloth their covering.
"The Lord hath given me the tongue of the learned that I should know how to speak
a word in season to him that is weary. He hath opened mine ear, and I have listened to Him
as a master.
"The Lord hath revealed His will, and I was not rebellious.
"I gave my body to the smiters, and my cheeks to outrage; I hid not my face from
shame and spitting. But the Lord hath helped me; therefore I have not been confounded.
"He is near that justifieth me; who will contend with me? who will be mine
adversary, and accuse me of sin. God himself being my protector?
"All men shall pass away, and be consumed by time; let those that fear God hearken
to the voice of His servant; let him that languisheth in darkness put his trust in the
Lord. But as for you, ye do but kindle the wrath of God upon you; ye walk in the light of
your fire and in the sparks that ye have kindled. This shall ye have of mine hand; ye
shall lie down in sorrow.
"Hearken to me, ye that follow after righteousness, ye that seek the Lord: look
unto the rock whence ye are hewn, and to the hole of the pit whence ye are digged. Look
unto Abraham, your father, and unto Sarah that bare you: for I called him alone, when
childless, and increased him. Behold, I have comforted Zion, and heaped upon her blessings
and consolations.
"Hearken unto me, my people, and give ear unto me; for a law shall proceed from
me, and I will make my judgment to rest for a light of the Gentiles."
Amos, viii. The prophet, having enumerated the sins of Israel, said that God had sworn
to take vengeance on them.
He says this: "And it shall come to pass in that day, saith the Lord, that I will
cause the sun to go down at noon, and I will darken the earth in the clear day; and I will
turn your feasts into mourning, and all your songs into lamentation.
"You all shall have sorrow and suffering, and I will make this nation mourn as for
an only son, and the end therefore as a bitter day. Behold, the days come, saith the Lord,
that I will send a famine in the land, not a famine of bread, nor a thirst for water, but
of hearing the words of the Lord. And they shall wander from sea to sea, and from the
north even to the east; they shall run to and fro to seek the word of the Lord, and shall
not find it.
"In that day shall the fair virgins and young men faint for thirst. They that have
followed the idols of Samaria, and sworn by the god of Dan, and followed the manner of
Beersheba, shall fall, and never rise up again."
Amos, iii. 2; "Ye only have I known of all the families of the earth for my
people."
Daniel, xii. 7. Having described all the extent of the reign of the Messiah, he says:
"All these things shall be finished, when the scattering of the people of Israel
shall be accomplished."
Haggai, ii.4: "Ye who, comparing this second house with the glory of the first,
despise it, be strong, saith the Lord, be strong, O Zerubbabel, and O Jesus, the high
priest, be strong, all ye people of the land, and work. For I am with you, saith the Lord
of hosts; according to the word that I covenanted with you when ye came out of Egypt, so
my spirit remaineth among you. Fear ye not. For thus saith the Lord of hosts: Yet one
little while, and I will shake the heavens, and the earth, and the sea, and the dry
land," (a way of speaking to indicate a great and an extraordinary change); "and
I will shake all nations, and the desire of all the Gentiles shall come; and I will fill
this house with glory, saith the Lord.
"The silver is mine, and the gold is mine, saith the Lord," (that is to say,
it is not by that that I wish to be honoured; as it is said elsewhere: All the beasts of
the field are mine, what advantages me that they are offered me in sacrifice?). "The
glory of this latter house shall be greater than of the former, saith the Lord of hosts;
and in this place will I establish my house, saith the Lord.
"According to all that thou desirest in Horeb in the day of the assembly, saying,
Let us not hear again the voice of the Lord, neither let us see this fire any more, that
we die not. And the Lord said unto me, their prayer is just. I will raise them up a
prophet from among their brethren, like unto thee, and will put my words in his mouth; and
he shall speak unto them all that I shall command him. And it shall come to pass, that
whosoever will not hearken unto my words which he will speak in my name, I will require it
of him."
Genesis, xlix. "Judah, thou art he whom thy brethren shall praise, and thou shalt
conquer thine enemies; thy father's children shall bow down before thee. Judah is a lion's
whelp: from the prey, my son, thou art gone up, and art couched as a lion, and as a
lioness that shall be roused up.
"The sceptre shall not depart from Judah, nor a lawgiver from between his feet,
until Shiloh come; and unto him shall the gathering of the people be."
727
During the life of the Messiah. - Aenigmatis. - Ezek. xvii.
His forerunner. Malachi, iii.
He will be born an infant. Is. ix.
He will be born in the village of Bethlehem. Micah, v. He will appear chiefly in
Jerusalem, and will be a descendant of the family of Judah and of David.
He is to blind the learned and the wise, Is. vi., viii., xxix., &c.; and to preach
the Gospel to the slowly, Is. xxix.; to open the eyes of the blind, give health to the
sick, and bring light to those that languish in darkness, Is. lxi.
He is to show the perfect way, and be the teacher of the Gentiles. Is. lv.; xlii. 1-7.
The prophecies are to be unintelligible to the wicked, Dan. xii.; Hosea, xiv. 10; but
they are to be intelligible to those who are well informed.
The prophecies, which represent Him as poor, represent Him as master of the nations.
Is. lii. 14, &c.; liii.; Zech. ix. 9.
The prophecies, which foretell the time, foretell Him only as master of the nations and
suffering, and not as in the clouds nor as judge. And those, which represent Him thus as
judge and in glory, do not mention the time. When the Messiah is spoken of as great and
glorious, it is as the judge of the world, and not its Redeemer.
He is to be the victim for the sins of the world. Is. xxxix., liii., &c.
He is to be the precious corner-stone. Is. xxviii. 16.
He is to be a stone of stumbling and offence. Is. viii. Jerusalem is to dash against
this stone.
The builders are to reject this stone. Ps. cxvii. 22.
God is to make this stone the chief-corner-stone.
And this stone is to grow into a huge mountain, and fill the whole earth. Dan. ii.
So He is to be rejected, despised, betrayed, (Ps. cviii. 8), sold (Zech. xi 12), spit
upon, buffeted, mocked, afflicted in innumerable ways, given gall to drink (Ps. lxviii.),
pierced (Zech. xii.), His feet and His hands pierced, slain, and lots cast for His
raiment.
He will rise again (Ps. xv.) the third day (Hosea, vi 3).
He will ascend to heaven to sit on the right hand. Ps. cx.
The kings will arm themselves against Him. Ps. ii.
Being on the right hand of the Father, He will be victorious over His enemies.
The kings of the earth and all nations will worship Him. Is. lx.
The Jews will continue as a nation. Jeremiah.
They will wander, without kings, &c. (Hosea iii.), without prophets (Amos), looking
for salvation and finding it not (Isaiah.).
Calling of the Gentiles by Jesus Christ. Is. lii. 15; lv. 5; lx., &c. Ps. lxxxi.
Hosea, i. 9: "Ye ar not my people, and I will not be your God, when ye are
multiplied after the dispersion. In the places where it was said, Ye are not my people, I
will call them my people."
728
It was not lawful to sacrifice outside of Jerusalem, which was the place that the Lord
has chosen, nor even to eat the tithes elsewhere. Deut. xii. 5, &c.; xiv. 23, &c.;
xv. 20; xvi. 2, 7, 11, 15.
Hosea foretold that they should be without a king, without a prince, without a
sacrifice, and without an idol; and this prophecy is now fulfilled, as they cannot make a
lawful sacrifice out of Jerusalem.
729
Predictions. - It was foretold that, in the time of the Messiah, He should come to
establish a new covenant, which should make them forget the escape from Egypt (Jer. xxiii.
5; Is. xliii. 16) that He should place His law not in externals, but in the heart; that He
should put His fear, which had only been from without, in the midst of the heart. Who does
not see the Christian law in all this?
730
... That then idolatry would be overthrown; that this Messiah would cast down all
idols, and bring men into the worship of the true God.
That the temples of the idols would be cast down, and that among all nations, and sin
all places of the earth, He would be offered a pure sacrifice, not of beasts.
That He would be king of the Jews and Gentiles. And we see this king of the Jews and
Gentiles oppressed by both, who conspire His death; and ruler of both, destroying the
worship of Moses in Jerusalem, which was i s centre, where He made His first Church; and
also the worship of idols in Rome, the centre of it, where He made His chief Church.
731
Prophecies. - That Jesus Christ will sit on the right hand, till God has subdued His
enemies.
Therefore He will not subdue them Himself.
732
"... Then they shall teach no more every man his neighbor, saying, Here is the
Lord, for God shall make Himself known to all."
"... Your sons shall prophesy." "I will put my spirit and my fear in
your heart."
All that is the same thing. To prophesy is to speak of God, not from outward proofs,
but from an inward and immediate feeling.
733
That He would teach men the perfect way.
And there has never come, before Him nor after Him, any man who has taught anything
divine approaching to this.
734
... That Jesus Christ would be small in His beginning, and would then increase. The
little stone of Daniel.
If I had in no wise heard of the Messiah, nevertheless, after such wonderful
predictions of the course of the world which I see fulfilled, I see that He is divine. And
if I knew that these same books foretold a Messiah, I should be sure that He would come;
and seeing that they place His time before the destruction of the second temple, I should
say that He had come.
735
Prophecies. - That the Jews would reject Jesus Christ, and would be rejected of God,
for this reason, that the chosen vine brought forth only wild grapes. That the chosen
people would be faithless, ungrateful, and unbelieving, populum non credentem et
contradicentem. 4 That God would strike them with blindness, and in full noon
they would grope like the blind; and that a forerunner would go before Him.
[Footnote 4: Isaiah, lxv. 2; Romans, x. 21.]
736
Transfixerunt. Zech. xii. 10.
That a deliverer should come, who would crush the demon's head, and free His people
from their sins, ex omnibus iniquitatibus; that there should be a New Covenant, which
would be eternal; that there should be another priesthood after the order of Melchisedek,
and it should be eternal; that the Christ should be glorious, mighty, strong, and yet so
poor that He would not be recognised, nor taken for what He is, but rejected and slain;
that His people who denied Him should no longer be His people; that the idolaters should
receive Him, and take refuge in Him; that He should leave Zion to reign in the centre of
idolatry; that nevertheless the Jews should continue for ever; that He should be of Judah,
and when there should be no longer a king.
Section XII
Part I
Proofs of Jesus Christ
737
Therefore I reject all other religions. In that way I find an answer to all objections.
It is right that a God so pure should only reveal Himself to those whose hearts are
purified. Hence this religion is lovable to me, and I find it now sufficiently justified
by so divine a morality. But I find more in it.
I find it convincing that, since the memory of man has lasted, it was constantly
announced to men that they were universally corrupt, but that a Redeemer should come; that
it was not one man who said it, but innumerable men, and a whole nation, expressly made
for the purpose, and prophesying for four thousand years. This is a nation which is more
ancient than every other nation. Their books, scattered abroad, are four thousand years
old.
The more I examine them, the more truths I find in them: an entire nation foretell Him
before His advent, and an entire nation worship Him after His advent; what has preceded
and what has followed; in short, people without idols and kings, this synagogue which was
foretold, and these wretches who frequent it, and who, being our enemies, are admirable
witnesses of the truth of these prophecies, wherein their wretchedness and even their
blindness are foretold.
I find this succession, this religion, wholly divine in its authority, in its duration,
in its perpetuity, in its morality, in its conduct, in its doctrine, in its effects. The
frightful darkness of the Jews was foretold. Eris palpans in meridie. 1 Dabitur
liber scienti literas, et dicet: Non possum legere. 2 While the sceptre was
still in the hands of the first foreign usurper, there is the report of the coming of
Jesus Christ.
[Footnote 1: Deuteronomy, xxviii. 29.]
[Footnote 2: Isaiah, xxix. 12.]
So I hold out my arms to my Redeemer, who, having been foretold for four thousand
years, has come to suffer and to die for me on earth, at the time and under all the
circumstances foretold. By His grace, I await death in peace, in the hope of being
eternally united to Him. Yet I live with joy, whether in the prosperity which it pleases
Him to bestow upon me, or in the adversity which He sends for my good, and which He has
taught me to bear by His example.
738
The prophecies having given different signs which should all happen at the advent of
the Messiah, it was necessary that all these signs should occur at the same time. So it
was necessary that the fourth monarchy should have come, when the seventy weeks of Daniel
were ended; and that the sceptre should have then departed from Judah. And all this
happened without any difficulty. Then it was necessary that the Messiah should come; and
Jesus Christ then came, who was called the Messiah. And all this again was without
difficulty. This indeed shows the truth of the prophecies.
739
The prophets foretold, and were not foretold. The saints again were foretold, but did
not foretell. Jesus Christ both foretold and was foretold.
740
Jesus Christ, whom the two Testaments regard, the Old as its hope, the New as its
model, and both as their centre.
741
The two oldest books in the world are those of Moses and Job, the one a Jew and the
other a Gentile. Both of them look upon Jesus Christ as their common centre and object:
Moses in relating the promises of God to Abraham, Jacob, &c., and his prophecies; and
Job, Quis mihi det ut, &c. Scio enim quod redemptor meus vivit, &c. 3
[Footnote 3: Job, xix. 23 - 25.]
742
The Gospel only speaks of the virginity of the Virgin up to the time of the birth of
Jesus Christ. All with reference to Jesus Christ.
743
Proofs of Jesus Christ.
Why was the book of Ruth preserved?
Why the story of Tamar?
744
"Pray that ye enter not into temptation." It is dangerous to be tempted; and
people are tempted because they do not pray.
Et tu conversus confirma fratres tuos. 4 But before, conversus Jesus
respexit Petrum. 5
[Footnote 4: Luke, xxii. 32.]
[Footnote 5: Luke, xxii. 61.]
Saint Peter asks permission to strike Malchus, and strikes before hearing the answer.
Jesus Christ replies afterwards.
The word, Galilee, which the Jewish mob pronounced as if by chance, in accusing Jesus
Christ before Pilate, afforded Pilate a reason for sending Jesus Christ to Herod. And
thereby the mystery was accomplished, that He should be judged by Jews and Gentiles.
Chance was apparently the cause of the accomplishment of the mystery.
745
Those who have a difficulty in believing seek a reason in the fact that the Jews do not
believe. "Were this so clear," say they, "why did the Jews not
believe?" And they almost wish that they had believed, so as not to be kept back by
the example of their refusal. But it is their very refusal that is the foundation of our
faith. We should be much less disposed to the faith, if they were on our side. We should
then have a more ample pretext. The wonderful thing is to have made the Jews great lovers
of the things foretold, and great enemies of their fulfilment.
746
The Jews were accustomed to great and striking miracles, and so, having had the great
miracles of the Red Sea and of the land of Canaan as an epitome of the great deeds of
their Messiah, they therefore looked for more striking miracles, of which those of Moses
were only the patterns.
747
The carnal Jews and the heathen have their calamities, and Christians also. There is no
Redeemer for the heathen, for they do not so much as hope for one. There is no Redeemer
for the Jews; they hope for Him in vain. There is a Redeemer only for Christians. (See
Perpetuity.)
748
In the time of the Messiah the people divided themselves. The spiritual embraced the
Messiah, and the coarser-minded remained to serve as witnesses of Him.
749
"If this was clearly foretold to the Jews, how did they not believe it, or why
were they not destroyed for resisting a fact so clear?"
I reply: in the first place, it was foretold both that they would not believe a thing
so clear, and that they would not be destroyed. And nothing is more to the glory of the
Messiah; for it was not enough that there should be prophets; their prophets must be kept
above suspicion. Now, &c.
750
If the Jews had all been converted by Jesus Christ, we should have none but
questionable witnesses. And if they had been entirely destroyed, we should have no
witnesses at all.
751
What do the prophets say of Jesus Christ? That He will be clearly God? No; but that He
is a God truly hidden; that He will be slighted; that none will think that it is He; that
He will be a stone of stumbling, upon which many will stumble, &c. Let people then
reproach us no longer for want of clearness, since we make profession of it.
But, it is said, there are obscurities. - And without that, no one would have stumbled
over Jesus Christ, and this is one of the formal pronouncements of the prophets: Excaeca. 6
[Footnote 6: Isaiah, vi. 10.]
752
Moses first teaches the Trinity, original sin, the Messiah.
David: a great witness; a king, good, merciful, a beautiful soul, a sound mind,
powerful. He prophesies, and his wonder comes to pass. This is infinite.
He had only to say that he was the Messiah, if he had been vain; for the prophesies are
clearer about him than about Jesus Christ. And the same with Saint John.
753
Herod was believed to be the Messiah. He had taken away the sceptre from Judah, but he
was not of Judah. This gave rise to a considerable sect.
Curse of the Greeks upon those who count three periods of time.
In what way should the Messiah come, seeing that through Him the sceptre was to be
eternally in Judah, and at His coming the sceptre was to be taken away from Judah?
In order to effect that seeing they should not see, and hearing they should not
understand, nothing could be better done.
754
Homo existens te Deum facit. 7 Scriptum est, Dii estis, et non potest solvi
Scriptura. 8 Haec infirmitas non est ad vitam et est ad mortem. 9
Lazarus dormit, et deinde dixit: Lazarus mortuus est. 10
[Footnote 7: "Man existing makes thee God."]
[Footnote 8: "It is written, 'You are Gods,' and the Scripture cannot be
overthrown."]
[Footnote 9: "This sickness is not unto life, and is unto death."]
[Footnote 10: John, xi. 11, 14.]
755
The apparent discrepancy of the Gospels.
756
What can we have but reverence for a man who foretells plainly things which come to
pass, and who declares his intention both to blind and to enlighten, and who intersperses
obscurities among the clear things which come to pass?
757
The time of the first advent was foretold; the time of the second is not so; because
the first was to be obscure, and the second is to be brilliant, and so manifest that even
His enemies will recognise it. But, as He was first to come only in obscurity, and to be
known only of those who searched the Scriptures....
758
God, in order to cause the Messiah to be known by the good and not to be known by the
wicked, made Him to be foretold in this manner. If the manner of the Messiah had been
clearly foretold, there would have been no obscurity, even for the wicked. If the time had
been obscurely foretold, there would have been obscurity, even for the good. For their
[goodness of heart] would not have made them understand, for instance, that the closed mem
signifies six hundred years. But the time has been clearly foretold, and the manner in
types.
By this means, the wicked, taking the promised blessings for material blessings, have
fallen into error, in spite of the clear prediction of the time; and the good have not
fallen into error. For the understanding of the promised blessings depends on the heart,
which calls "good" that which it loves; but the understanding of the promised
time does not depend on the heart. And thus the clear prediction of the time, and the
obscure prediction of the blessings, deceive the wicked alone.
759
Either the Jews or the Christians must be wicked.
760
The Jews reject Him, but not all. The saints receive Him, and not the carnal-minded.
And so far is this from being against His glory, that it is the last touch which crowns
it. For their argument, the only one found in all their writings, in the Talmud and in the
Rabbinical writings, amounts only to this, that Jesus Christ has not subdued the nations
with sword in hand, gladium tuum, potentissime. 11 Is this all they have to
say? Jesus Christ has been slain, say they. He has failed. He has not subdued the heathen
with His might. He has not bestowed upon us their spoil. He does not give riches. Is this
all they have to say? It is in this respect that He is lovable to me. I would not desire
Him whom they fancy. It is evident that it is only His life which has prevented them from
accepting Him; and through this rejection they are irreproachable witnesses, and, what is
more, they thereby accomplish the prophecies.
[Footnote 11: Psalms, xlv. 3.]
[By means of the fact that this people have not accepted Him, this miracle here has
happened. The prophecies were the only lasting miracles which could be wrought, but they
were liable to be denied.]
761
The Jews, in slaying Him in order not to receive Him as the Messiah, have given Him the
final proof of being the Messiah.
And in continuing not to recognise Him, they made themselves irreproachable witnesses.
Both in slaying Him, and in continuing to deny Him, they have fulfilled the prophecies
(Is. lx.; Ps.lxxi.).
762
What could the Jews, His enemies, do? If they receive Him, they give proof of Him by
their reception; for then the guardians of the expectation of the Messiah receive Him. If
they reject Him, they give proof of Him by their rejection.
763
The Jews, in testing if He were God, have shown that He was man.
764
The Church has had as much difficulty in showing that Jesus Christ was man, against
those who denied it, as in showing that he was God; and the probabilities were equally
great.
765
Source of contradictions. - A God humiliated, even to the death on the cross; a Messiah
triumphing over death by his own death. Two natures in Jesus Christ, two advents, two
states of man's nature.
766
Types. - Saviour, father, sacrificer, offering, food, king, wise, lawgiver, afflicted,
poor, having to create a people whom He must lead and nourish and bring into His land . .
.
Jesus Christ. Offices. - He alone had to create a great people, elect, holy, and
chosen; to lead, nourish, and bring it into the place of rest and holiness; to make it
holy to God; to make it the temple of God; to reconcile it to, and save it from the wrath
of God; to free it from the slavery of sin, which visibly reigns in man; to give laws to
this people, and engrave these laws on their heart; to offer Himself to God for them, and
sacrifice Himself for them; to be a victim without blemish, and Himself the sacrificer,
having to offer Himself, His body, and His blood, and yet to offer bread and wine to God .
. .
Ingrediens mundum. 12
[Footnote 12: Hebrews, x. 5.]
"Stone upon stone."
What preceded and what followed. All the Jews exist still, and are wanderers.
Part II
767
Of all that is on earth, He partakes only of the sorrows, not of the joys. He loves His
neighbours, but His love does not confine itself within these bounds, and overflows to His
own enemies, and then to those of God.
768
Jesus Christ typified by Joseph, the beloved of his father, sent by his father to see
his brethren, &c., innocent, sold by his brethren for twenty pieces of silver, and
thereby becoming their lord, their saviour, the saviour of strangers, and the saviour of
the world; which had not been but for their plot to destroy him, their sale and their
rejection of him.
In prison Joseph innocent between two criminals; Jesus Christ on the cross between two
thieves. Joseph foretells freedom to the one, and death to the other, from the same omens.
Jesus Christ saves the elect, and condemns the outcast for the same sins. Joseph foretells
only; Jesus Christ acts. Joseph asks him who will be saved to remember him, when he comes
into his glory; and he whom Jesus Christ saves asks that He will remember him, when He
comes into His kingdom.
769
The conversion of the heathen was only reserved for the grace of the Messiah. The Jews
have been so long in opposition to them without success; all that Solomon and the prophets
said has been useless. Sages, like Plato and Socrates, have been able to persuade them.
770
After many persons had gone before, Jesus Christ at last came to say: "Here am I,
and this is the time. That which the prophets have said was to come in the fulness of
time, I tell you My apostles will do. The Jews shall be cast out. Jerusalem shall be soon
destroyed. And the heathen fhall enter into the knowledge of God. My apostles shall do
this after you have slain the heir of the vineyard."
Then the apostles said to the Jews: "You shall be accursed," (Celsus laughed
at it); and to the heathen, "You shall enter into the knowledge of God." And
this then came to pass.
771
Jesus Christ came to blind those who saw clearly, and to give sight to the blind; to
heal the sick, and leave the healthy to die; to call to repentance, and to justify
sinners, and to leave the righteous in their sins; to fill the needy, and leave the rich
empty.
772
Holiness. - Effundum spiritum meum. 13 All nations were in unbelief and
lust. The whole world now became fervent with love. Princes abandoned their pomp; maidens
suffered martyrdom. Whence came this influence? The Messiah was come. These were the
effect and signs of His coming.
[Footnote 13: Joel, ii. 28.]
773
Destruction of the Jews and heathen by Jesus Christ: Omnes gentes venient et adorabunt
eum. 14 Parum est ut, &c. 15 Postula a me. 16
Adorabunt eum omnes reges. 17 Testes iniqui. 18 Dabit maxillam
percutienti. 19 Dederunt fel in escam. 20
[Footnote 14: Psalms, xxii. 2]
[Footnote 15: Isaiah, xlix. 6.]
[Footnote 16: Psalms, ii. 8.]
[Footnote 17: Psalms, lxxii. II.]
[Footnote 18: Psalms, xxxv. II.]
[Footnote 19: Lamentations, iii. 30.]
[Footnote 20: Psalms, lxix. 21.]
774
Jesus Christ for all, Moses for a nation.
The Jews blessed in Abraham: "I will bless those that bless thee." But:
"All nations blessed in his seed." Parum est ut, &c.
Lumen ad revelationem gentium. 21
[Footnote 21: Luke, ii. 32.]
Non fecit taliter omni nationi, 22 said David, in speaking of the Law. But,
in speaking of Jesus Christ, we must say: Fecit taliter omni nationi. Parum est ut,
&c., Isaiah. So it belongs to Jesus Christ to be universal. Even the Church offers
sacrifice only for the faithful. Jesus Christ offered that of the cross for all.
[Footnote 22: Psalms, cxlvii. 20.]
775
There is heresy in always explaining omnes by "all," and heresy in not
explaining it sometimes by "all." Bibite ex hoc omnes; 23 the
Huguenots are heretics in explaining it by "all." In quo omnes peccaverunt; 24
the Huguenots are heretics in excepting the children of true believers. We must then
follow the Fathers and tradition in order to know when to do so, since there is heresy to
be feared on both sides.
[Footnote 23: Matthew, xxvi. 27]
[Footnote 24: Romans, v. 12.]
776
Ne timeas pusillus grex. 25 Timore et tremore. - Quid ergo? Ne timeas [modo]
timeas. Fear not, provided you fear; but if you fear not, then fear.
Qui me recipit, non me recipit, sed eum qui me misit. 26
Nemo scit, neque Filius. 27
Nubes lucida obumbravit. 28
Saint John was to turn hearts of the fathers to the children, and Jesus Christ to plant
division. There is no contradiction.
[Footnote 25: Luke, xii. 32.]
[Footnote 26: Matthew, x. 40.]
[Footnote 27: Matthew, xi. 27.]
[Footnote 28: Matthew, xvii. 5.]
777
The effects in communi and in particulari. 29 The semi-Pelagians err in
saying of in communi what is true only in particulari; and the Calvinists in saying in
particulari what is true in communi. Such is my opinion.
[Footnote 29: "In general," "in particular."]
778
Omnis Judaea regio, et Jerosolomytae universi, et baptizabantur. 30 Because
of all the conditions of men who came there.
From these stones there can come children unto Abraham.
[Footnote 30: Mark, i. 5.]
779
If men knew themselves, God would heal and pardon them. Ne convertantur et sanem eos,
et dimittantur eis peccata. 31
[Footnote 31: Mark, iv. 12.]
780
Jesus Christ never condemned without hearing. To Judas: Amice, ad quid venisti? 32
To him that had not on the wedding garment, the same.
[Footnote 32: Matthew, xxvi. 50.]
781
The types of the completeness of the Redemption, as that the sun gives light to all,
indicate only completeness; but [the types] of exclusions, as of the Jews elected to the
exclusion of the Gentiles, indicate exclusion.
"Jesus Christ the Redeemer of all." - Yes, for He has offered, like a man who
has ransomed all those who were willing to come to Him. If any die on the way, it is their
misfortune; but, so far as He was concerned, He offered them redemption. - That holds good
in this example, where he who ransoms and he who prevents death are two persons, but not
of Jesus Christ, who does both these things. - No, for Jesus Christ, in the quality of
Redeemer, is not perhaps Master of all; and thus, in so far as it is in Him, He is the
Redeemer of all.
When it is said that Jesus Christ did not die for all, you take undue advantage of a
fault in men who at once apply this exception to themselves; and this is to favour
despair, instead of turning them from it to favour hope. For men thus accustom themselves
to inward virtues by outward customs.
782
The victory over death. What is a man advantaged if he gain the whole world and lose
his own soul? Whosoever will save his soul, shall lose it.
"I am not come to destroy the law, but to fulfil."
"Lambs took not away the sins of the world, but I am the lamb which taketh away
the sins."
"Moses gave you not the bread from heaven. Moses hath not led you out of
captivity, and made you truly free."
783
...Then Jesus Christ comes to tell men that they have no other enemies but themselves;
that it is their passions which keep them apart from God; that He comes to destroy these,
and give them His grace, so as to make of them all one Holy Church; that He comes to bring
back into this Church the heathen and Jews; that He comes to destroy the idols of the
former and the superstition of the latter. To this all men are opposed, not only from the
natural opposition of lust; but, above all, the kings of the earth, as had been foretold,
join together to destroy this religion at its birth. (Proph.: Quare fermerunt gentes . . .
reges terrae . . . adversus Christum. 33)
[Footnote 33: Psalms, ii. 1-2. (Taken as a prophecy of Christ.)]
All that is great on earth is united together; the learned, the wise, the kings. The
first write; the second condemn; the last kill. And notwithstanding all these oppositions,
these men, simple and weak, resist all these powers, subdue even these kings, these
learned men and these sages, and remove idolatry from all the earth. And all this is done
by the power which had foretold it.
784
Jesus Christ would not have the testimony of devils, nor of those who were not called,
but of God and John the Baptist.
785
I consider Jesus Christ in all persons and in ourselves: Jesus Christ as a Father in
His Father, Jesus Christ as a Brother in His Brethren, Jesus Christ as poor in the poor,
Jesus Christ as rich in the rich, Jesus Christ as Doctor and Priest in priests, Jesus
Christ as Sovereign in princes, &c. For by His glory He is all that is great, being
God; and by His mortal life He is all that is poor and abject. Therefore He has taken this
unhappy condition, so that He could be in all persons, and the model of all conditions.
786
Jesus Christ is an obscurity (according to what the world calls obscurity), such that
historians, writing only of important matters of states, have hardly noticed Him.
787
On the fact that neither Josephus, nor Tacitus, nor other historians have spoken of
Jesus Christ. - So far is this from telling against Christianity, that on the contrary it
tells for it. For it is certain that Jesus Christ has existed; that His religion has made
a great talk; and that these persons were not ignorant of it. Thus it is plain that they
purposely concealed it, or that, if they did speak of it, their account has been
suppressed or changed.
788
"I have reserved me seven thousand." I love the worshippers unknown to the
world and to the very prophets.
789
As Jesus Christ remained unknown among men, so His truth remains among common opinions
without external difference. Thus the Eucharist among ordinary bread.
790
Jesus would not be slain without the forms of justice; for it is far more ignominious
to die by justice than by an unjust sedition.
791
The false justice of Pilate only serves to make Jesus Christ suffer; for he causes Him
to be scourged by his false justice, and afterwards puts Him to death. It would have been
better to have put Him to death at once. Thus it is with the falsely just. They do good
and evil works to please the world, and to show that they are not altogether of Jesus
Christ; for they are ashamed of Him. And at last, under great temptations and on great
occasions, they kill Him.
792
What man ever had more renown? The whole Jewish people foretell Him before His coming.
The Gentile people worship Him after His coming. The two peoples, Gentile and Jewish,
regard Him as their centre.
And yet what man enjoys this renown less? Of thirty-three years, He lives thirty
without appearing. For three years He passes as an impostor; the priests and the chief
people reject Him; His friends and His nearest relatives despise Him. Finally, He dies,
betrayed by one of His own disciples, denied by another, and abandoned by all.
What part, then, has He in this renown? Never had man so much renown; never had man
more ignominy. All that renown has served only for us. to render us capable of recognising
Him; and He had none of it for Himself.
793
The infinite distance between body and mind is a symbol of the infinitely more infinite
distance between mind and charity; for charity is supernatural.
All the glory of greatness has no lustre for people who are in search of understanding.
The greatness of clever men is invisible to kings, to the rich, to chiefs, and to all
the worldly great.
The greatness of wisdom, which is nothing if not of God, is invisible to the
carnal-minded and to the clever. These are three orders differing in kind.
Great geniuses have their power, their glory, their greatness, their victory, their
lustre, and have no need of worldly greatness, with which they are not in keeping. They
are seen, not by the eye, but by the mind; this is sufficient.
The saints have their power, their glory, their victory, their lustre, and need no
worldly or intellectual greatness, with which they have no affinity; for these neither add
anything to them, nor take away anything from them. They are seen of God and the angels,
and not of the body, nor of the curious mind. God is enough for them.
Archimedes, apart from his rank, would have the same veneration. He fought no battles
for the eyes to feast upon; but he has given his discoveries to all men. Oh! how brilliant
he was to the mind!
Jesus Christ, without riches, and without any external exhibition of knowledge, is in
His own order of holiness. He did not invent; He did not reign. But He was humble,
patient, holy, holy to God, terrible to devils, without any sin. Oh! in what great pomp,
and in what wonderful splendour, He is come to the eyes of the heart, which perceive
wisdom!
It would have been useless for Archimedes to have acted the prince in his books on
geometry, although he was a prince.
It would have been useless for our Lord Jesus Christ to come like a king, in order to
shine forth in His kingdom of holiness. But He came there appropriately in the glory of
His own order.
It is most absurd to take offence at the lowliness of Jesus Christ, as if His lowliness
were in the same order as the greatness which He came to manifest. If we consider this
greatness in His life, in His passion, in His obscurity, in His death, in the choice of
His disciples, in their desertion, in His secret resurrection, and the rest, we shall see
it to be so immense, that we shall have no reason for being offended at a lowliness which
is not of that order.
But there are some who can only admire worldly greatness, as though there were no
intellectual greatness; and others who only admire intellectual greatness, as though there
were not infinitely higher things in wisdom.
All bodies, the firmament, the stars, the earth and its kingdoms, are not equal to the
lowest mind; for mind knows all these and itself; and these bodies nothing.
All bodies together, and all minds together, and all their products, are not equal to
the least feeling of charity. This is of an order infinitely more exalted.
From all bodies together, we cannot obtain one little thought; this is impossible, and
of another order. From all bodies and minds, we cannot produce a feeling of true charity;
this is impossible, and of another and supernatural order.
794
Why did Jesus Christ not come in a visible manner, instead of obtaining testimony of
Himself from preceding prophecies? Why did He cause Himself to be foretold in types?
795
If Jesus Christ had only come to sanctify, all Scripture and all things would tend to
that end; and it would be quite easy to convince unbelievers. If Jesus Christ had only
come to blind, all His conduct would be confused; and we would have no means of convincing
unbelievers. But as he came in sanctificationem et in scandalum. 34 as Isaiah
says, we cannot convince unbelievers, and they cannot convince us. But by this very fact
we convince them; since we say that in his whole conduct there is no convincing proof on
one side or the other.
[Footnote 34: Isaiah, viii. 14.]
796
Jesus Christ does not say that He is not of Nazareth, in order to leave the wicked in
their blindness; nor that He is not Joseph's son.
797
Proofs of Jesus Christ. - Jesus Christ said great things so simply, that it seems as
though He had not thought them great; and yet so clearly that we easily see what He
thought of them. This clearness, joined to this simplicity, is wonderful.
798
The style of the gospel is admirable in so many ways, and among the rest in hurling no
invectives against the persecutors and enemies of Jesus Christ. For there is no such
invective in any of the historians against Judas, Pilate, or any of the Jews.
If this moderation of the writers of the Gospels had been assumed, as well as many
other traits of so beautiful a character, and they had only assumed it to attract notice,
even if they had not dared to draw attention to it themselves, they would not have failed
to secure friends, who would have made such remarks to their advantage. But as they acted
thus without pretence, and from wholly disinterested motives, they did not point it out to
any one; and I believe that many such facts have not been noticed till now, which is
evidence of the natural disinterestedness with which the thing has been done.
799
An artisan who speaks of wealth, a lawyer who speaks of war, of royalty, &c.; but
the rich man rightly speaks of wealth, a king speaks indifferently of a great gift he has
just made, and God gightly speaks of God.
800
Who has taught the evangelists the qualities of a perfectly heroic soul, that they
paint it so perfectly in Jesus Christ? Why do they make Him weak in His agony? Do they not
know how to paint a resolute death? Yes, for the same Saint Luke paints the death of Saint
Stephen as braver than that of Jesus Christ.
They make Him therefore capable of fear, before the necessity of dying has come, and
then altogether brave.
But when they make Him so troubled, it is when He afflicts Himself; and when men
afflict Him, He is altogether strong.
801
Proof of Jesus Christ. - The supposition that the apostles were impostors is very
absurd. Let us think it out. Let us imagine those twelve men, assembled after the death of
Jesus Christ, plotting to say that He was risen. By this they attack all the powers. The
heart of man is strangely inclined to fickleness, to change, to promises, to gain. However
little any of them might have been led astray by all these attractions, nay more, by the
fear of prisons, tortures, and death, they were lost. Let us follow up this thought.
802
The apostles were either deceived or deceivers. Either supposition has difficulties;
for it is not possible to mistake a man raised from the dead...
While Jesus Christ was with them, He could sustain them. But, after that, if He did not
appear to them, who inspired them to act?
Section XIII
Part I
The Miracles
803
The beginning. - Miracles enable us to judge of doctrine, and doctrine enables us to
judge of miracles.
There are false miracles and true. There must be a distinction, in order to know them;
otherwise they would be useless. Now they are not useless; on the contrary, they are
fundamental. Now the rule which is given to us must be such, that it does not destroy the
proof which the true miracles give of the truth, which is the chief end of the miracles.
Moses has given two rules: that the prediction does not come to pass (Deut. xviii.),
and that they do not lead to idolatry (Deut. xiii.); and Jesus Christ one.
If doctrine regulates miracles, miracles are useless for doctrine.
If miracles regulate . . .
Objection to the rule. - The distinction of the times. One rule during the time of
Moses, another at present.
804
Miracle. - It is an effect, which exceeds the natural power of the means which are
employed for it; and what is not a miracle is an effect, which does not exceed the natural
power of the means which are employed for it. Thus, those who heal by invocation of the
devil do not work a miracle; for that does not exceed the natural power of the devil. But
. . .
805
The two fundamentals; one inward, the other outward; grace and miracles; both
supernatural.
806
Miracles and truth are necessary, because it is necessary to convince the entire man,
in body and soul.
807
In all times, either men have spoken of the true God, or the true God has spoken to
men.
808
Jesus Christ has verified that He was the Messiah, never in verifying His doctrine by
Scripture and the prophecies, but always by His miracles.
He proves by a miracle that He remits sins.
Rejoice not in your miracles, said Jesus Christ, but because your names are written in
heaven.
If they believe not Moses, neither will they believe one risen from the dead.
Nicodemus recognises by His miracles that His teaching is of God. Scimus quia venisti a
Deo magister; nemo enim potest haec signa facere quae tu facis nisi Deus fuerit cum eo. 1
He does not judge of the miracles by the teaching, but of the teaching by the miracles.
[Footnote 1: John, iii. 2.]
The Jews had a doctrine of God as we have one of Jesus Christ, and confirmed by
miracles. They were forbidden to believe every worker of miracles; and they were further
commanded to have recourse to the chief priests, and to rely on them.
And thus, in regard to their prophets, they had all those reasons which we have for
refusing to believe the workers of miracles.
And yet they were very sinful in rejecting the prophets, and Jesus Christ, because of
their miracles; and they would not have been culpable, if they had not seen the miracles.
Nisi fecissem . . . peccatum non haberent. 2 Therefore all belief rests upon
miracles.
[Footnote 2: John, xv. 24.]
Prophecy is not called miracle; as Saint John speaks of the first miracle in Cana, and
then of what Jesus Christ says to the woman of Samaria, when He reveals to her all her
hidden life. Then He heals the centurion's son; and Saint John calls this "the second
miracle."
809
The combinations of miracles.
810
The second miracle can suppose the first, but the first cannot suppose the second.
811
Had it not been for the miracles, there would have been no sin in not believing in
Jesus Christ.
812
I should not be a Christian, but for the miracles, said Saint Augustine.
813
Miracles. - How I hate those who make men doubt of miracles! Montaigne speaks of them
as he should in two places. In one, we see how careful he is; and yet, in the other he
believes, and makes sport of unbelievers.
However it may be, the Church is without proofs if they are right.
814
Montaigne against miracles.
Montaigne for miracles.
815
It is not possible to have a reasonable belief against miracles.
816
Unbelievers the most credulous. They believe the miracles of Vespasian, in order not to
believe those of Moses.
817
have seen miracles, and do not believe any of those who say that they have secrets to
make men immortal, or restore youth to them. - Having considered how it happens that so
great credence is given to so many impostors, who say they have remedies, often to the
length of men putting their lives into their hands, it has appeared to me that the true
cause is that there are true remedies. For it would not be possible that there should be
so many false remedies, and that so much faith should be placed in them, if there were
none true. If there had never been any remedy for any ill, and all ills had been
incurable, it is impossible that men should have imagined that they could give remedies,
and still more impossible that so many others should have believed those who boasted of
having remedies; in the same way as did a man boast of preventing death, no one would
believe him, because there is no example of this. But as there were a number of remedies
found to be true by the very knowledge of the greatest men, the belief of men is thereby
induced; and, this being known to be possible, it has been therefore concluded that it
was. For people commonly reason thus: "A thing is possible, therefore it is";
because the thing cannot be denied generally, since there are particular effects which are
true, the people, who cannot distinguish which among these particular effects are true,
believe them all. In the same way, the reason why so many false effects are credited to
the moon, is that there are some true, as the tide.
It is the same with prophecies, miracles, divination by dreams, sorceries, &c. For
if there had been nothing true in all this, men would have believed nothing of them; and
thus, instead of concluding that there are no true miracles because there are so many
false, we must, on the contrary, say that there certainly are true miracles, since there
are false, and that there are false miracles only because some are true. We must reason in
the same way about religion; for it would not be possible that men should have imagined so
many false religions, if there had not been a true one. The objection to this is that
savages have a religion; but the answer is that they have heard the true spoken of, as
appears by the deluge, circumcision, the cross of Saint Andrew, &c.
818
Having considered how it comes that there are so many false miracles, false
revelations, sorceries, &c., it has seemed to me that the true cause is that there are
some true; for it would not be possible that there should be so many false miracles, if
there were none true, nor so many false revelations, if there were none true, nor so many
false religions, if there were not one true. For if there had never been all this, it is
almost impossible that men should have imagined it, and still more impossible that so many
others should have believed it. But as there have been very great things true, and as they
have been believed by great men, this impression has been the cause that nearly everybody
is rendered capable of believing also the false. And thus, instead of concluding that
there are no true miracles, since there are so many false, it must be said, on the
contrary, that there are true miracles, since there are so many false; and that there are
false ones only because there are true; and that in the same way there are false religions
because there is one true. - Objection to this: savages have a religion. But this is
because they have heard the true spoken of, as appears by the cross of Saint Andrew, the
deluge, circumcision, &c. - This arises from the fact that the human mind, finding
itself inclined to that side by the truth, becomes thereby susceptible of all the
falsehoods of this . . .
819
Jeremiahr xxiii. 32. The miracles of the false prophets. In the Hebrew and Vatable 3
they are the tricks.
[Footnote 3: Professor of Hebrew in the College Royal in the 16th Century.]
Miracle does not always signify miracle. I Sam., xiv. 15; miracle signifies fear, and
is so in the Hebrew. The same evidently in Job, xxxiii. 7; and also Isaiah, xxi. 4;
Jeremiah, xliv. 12. Portentum signifies simulacrum, Jeremiah, l. 38; and it is so in the
Hebrew and Vatable. Isaiah, viii. 18. Jesus Christ says that He and His will be in
miracles.
820
If the devil favoured the doctrine which destroys him, he would be divided against
himself, as Jesus Christ said. If God favoured the doctrine which destroys the Church, He
would be divided against Himself. Omne regnum divisum. 4 For Jesus Christ
wrought against the devil, and destroyed his power over the heart, of which exorcism is
the symbolisation, in order to establish the kingdom of God. And thus He adds, Si in
digito Dei regnum Dei ad vos. 5
[Footnote 4: Matthew, xii. 25.]
[Footnote 5: Luke, xi. 20.]
821
There is a great difference between tempting and leading into error. God tempts, but He
does not lead into error. To tempt is to afford opportunities, which impose no necessity;
if men do not love God, they will do a certain thing. To lead into error is to place a man
under the necessity of inferring and following out what is untrue.
822
Abraham and Gideon are above revelation. The Jews blinded themselves in judging of
miracles by the Scripture. God has never abandoned His true worshippers.
I prefer to follow Jesus Christ than any other, because He has miracle, prophecy,
doctrine, perpetuity, &c.
The Donatists. No miracle which obliges them to say it is the devil.
The more we particularise God, Jesus Christ, the Church . . .
823
If there were no false miracles, there would be certainty. If there were no rule to
judge of them, miracles would be useless, and there would be no reason for believing.
Now there is, humanly speaking, no human certainty, but we have reason.
824
Either God has confounded the false miracles, or He has foretold them; and in both ways
He has raised Himself above what is supernatural with respect to us, and has raised us to
it.
825
Miracles serve not to convert, but to condemn. (Q. 113, A. 10, Ad. 2.)
826
Reasons why we do not believe.
John, xii. 37. Cum autem tanta signa fecisset, non credebant in eum, ut sermo Isayae
impteretur. Excaecavit, &c.
Haec dixit Isaias, quando vidit gloriam ejus et locutus est de eo.
Judaei signa petunt et Graeci sapientiam quaerunt, nos autem Jesum crucifixum. Sed
plenum signis, sed plenum sapientia; vos autem Christum non crucifixum et religionem sine
miraculis et sine sapientia. 6
[Footnote 6: Corinthians, i. 22.]
What makes us not believe in the true miracles, is want of love. John: Sed vos non
creditis, quia non estis ex ovibus. 7 What makes us believe the false is want
of love. I Thess. ii.
[Footnote 7: John, x. 26.]
The foundation of religion. It is the miracles. What then? Does God speak against
miracles, against the foundations of the faith which we have in Him?
If there is a God, faith in God must exist on earth. Now the miracles of Jesus Christ
are not foretold by Antichrist, but the miracles of Antichrist are foretold by Jesus
Christ. And so if Jesus Christ were not the Messiah, He would have indeed led into error;
but Antichrist cannot surely lead into error. When Jesus Christ foretold the miracles of
Antichrist, did He think of destroying faith in His own miracles?
Moses foretold Jesus Christ, and bade to follow Him. Jesus Christ foretold Antichrist,
and forbade to follow him.
It was impossible that in the time of Moses men should keep their faith for Antichrist,
who was unknown to them. But it is quite easy, in the time of Antichrist, to believe in
Jesus Christ, already known.
There is no reason for believing in Antichrist, which there is not for believing in
Jesus Christ. But there are reasons for believing in Jesus Christ, which there are not for
believing in the other.
827
Judges xiii. 23: "If the Lord were pleased to kill us, He would not have shewed us
all these things."
Hezekiah, Sennacherib.
Jeremiah. Hananiah, the false prophet, dies in seven months.
2 Macc. iii. The temple, ready for pillage, miraculously succored.
- 2 Macc. xv.
I Kings, xvii. The widow to Elijah, who had restored her son, "By this I know that
thy words are true."
I Kings, xviii. Elijah with the prophets of Baal.
In the dispute concerning the true God and the truth of religion, there has never
happened any miracle on the side of error, and not of truth.
Opposition. - Abel, Cain; Moses, the Magicians; Elijah, the false prophets; Jeremiah,
Hananiah; Micaiah, the false prophets; Jesus Christ, the Pharisees; St. Paul, Bar-jesus;
The Apostles, the Exorcists; Christians, unbelievers; Catholics, heretics; Elijah, Enoch;
Antichrist.
829
Jesus Christ says that the Scriptures testify of Him. But He does not point out in what
respect.
Even the prophecies could not prove Jesus Christ during His life; and so, men would not
have been culpable for not believing in Him before His death, had the miracles not
sufficed without doctrine. Now those who did not believe in Him, when He was still alive,
were sinners, as He said Himself, and without excuse. Therefore they must have had proof
beyond doubt, which they resisted. Now, they had not the prophecies, but only the
miracles. Therefore the latter suffice, when the doctrine is not inconsistent with them;
and they ought to be believed.
John, vii. 40. Dispute among the Jews as among the Christians of to-day. Some believed
in Jesus Christ; others believed Him not, because of the prophecies which said that He
should be born in Bethlehem. They should have considered more carefully whether He was
not. For His miracles being convincing, they should have been quite sure of these supposed
contradictions of His teaching to Scripture; and this obscurity did not excuse, but
blinded them. Thus those who refuse to believe in the miracles in the present day on
account of a supposed contradiction, which is unreal, are not excused.
The Pharisees said to the people, who believed in Him, because of His miracles:
"This people who knoweth not the law are cursed. But have any of the rulers or of the
Pharisees believed on him? For we know that out of Galilee ariseth no prophet."
Nicodemus answered: "Doth our law judge any man before it hear him, [and specially,
such a man who works such miracles]?"
830
The prophecies were ambiguous; they are no longer so.
831
The five propositions were ambiguous; they are no longer so.
832
Miracles are no longer necessary, because we have had them already. But when tradition
is no longer minded; when the Pope alone is offered to us; when he has been imposed upon;
and when the true source of truth, which is tradition, is thus excluded; and the Pope, who
is its guardian, is biassed; the truth is no longer free to appear. Then, as men speak no
longer of truth, truth itself must speak to men. This is what happened in the time of
Arius. (Miracles under Diocletian and under Arius.)
833
Miracle. - The people conclude this of themselves; but if the reason of it must be
given to you...
It is unfortunate to be in exception to the rule. The same must be strict, and opposed
to exception. But yet, as it is certain that there are exceptions to a rule, our judgment
must,though strict, be just.
834
John, vi. 26: Non quia vidisti signum, sed quia saturati estis.
Those who follow Jesus Christ because of His miracles honour His power in all the
miracles which it produces. But those who, making profession to follow Him because of His
miracles, follow Him in fact only because He comforts them and satisfies them with worldly
blessings, discredit His miracles, when they are opposed to their own comforts.
John, ix. 16: Non est hic homo a Deo, quia sabbatum non custodit. Alii: Quomodo potest
homo peccator haec signa facere?
Which is the most clear?
This house is not of God; for they do not there believe that the five propositions are
in Jansenius. Others: This house of is God; for in it there are wrought strange miracles.
Which is the most clear?
Tu quid dicis? Dico quia propheta est. - Nisi esset hic a Deo, non poterat facere
quidquam. 8
[Footnote 8: John, ix. 17, 33.]
835
In the Old Testament, when they will turn you from God. In the New, when they will turn
you from Jesus Christ. These are the occasions for excluding particular miracles from
belief. No others need excluded.
Does it therefore follow that they would have the right to exclude all the prophets who
came to them? No; they would have sinned in not excluding those who denied God, and would
have sinned in excluding those who did not deny God.
So soon, then, as we see a miracle, we must either assent to it, or have striking
proofs to the contrary. We must see if it denies a God, or Jesus Christ, or the Church.
Part II
836
There is a great difference between not being for Jesus Christ and saying so, and not
being for Jesus Christ and pretending to be so. The one party can do miracles, not the
others. For it is clear of the one party, that they are opposed to the truth, but not of
the others; and thus miracles are clearer.
837
That we must love one God only is a thing so evident, that it does not require miracles
to prove it.
838
Jesus Christ performed miracles, then the apostles, and the first saints in great
number; because the prophecies not being yet accomplished but in the process of being
accomplished by them, the miracles alone bore witness to them. It was foretold that the
Messiah should convert the nations. How could this prophecy be fulfilled without the
conversion of the nations? And how could the nations be converted to the Messiah, if they
did not see this final effect of the prophecies which prove Him? Therefore, till He had
died, risen again, and converted the nations, all was not accomplished; and so miracles
were needed during all this time. Now they are no longer needed against the Jews; for the
accomplished prophecies constitute a lasting miracle.
839
"Though ye believe not Me, believe at least the works." He refers them, as it
were, to the strongest proof.
It had been told to the Jews, as well as to Christians, that they should not always
believe the prophets; but yet the Pharisees and Scribes are greatly concerned about His
miracles, and try to show that they are false, or wrought by the devil. For they must
needs be convinced,if they acknowledge that they are of God.
At the present day we are not troubled to make this distinction. Still it is very easy
to do: those who deny neither God nor Jesus Christ do no miracles which are not certain.
Nemo facit virtutem in nomine meo, et cito possit de me male loqui. 9
[Footnote 9: Mark, ix. 39.]
But we have not to draw this distinction. Here is a sacred relic. Here is a thorn from
the crown of the Saviour of the world, over whom the prince of this world has no power,
which works miracles by the peculiar power of the blood shed for us. Now God Himself
chooses this house in order to display conspicuously therein His power.
These are not men who do miracles by an unknown and doubtful virtue, which makes a
decision difficult for us. It is God Himself. It is the instrument of the Passion of His
only Son, who, being in many places, chooses this, and makes men come from all quarters
there to receive these miraculous alleviations in their weaknesses.
840
The Church has three kinds of enemies: the Jews, who have never been of her body; the
heretics, who have withdrawn from it; and the evil Christians, who rend her from within.
These three kinds of different adversaries usually attack her in different ways. But
here they attack her in one and the same way. As they are all without miracles, and as the
Church has always had miracles against them, they have all had the same interest in
evading them; and they all make use of this excuse, that doctrine must not be judged by
miracles, but miracles, by doctrine. There were two parties among those who heard Jesus
Christ: those who followed His teaching on account of His miracles; others who said . . .
There were two parties in the time of Calvin . . . There are now the Jesuits, &c.
841
Miracles furnish the test in matters of doubt, between Jews and heathens, Jews and
Christians, Catholics and heretics, and slandered and slanderers, between the two crosses.
But miracles would be useless to heretics; for the Church, authorised by miracles which
have already obtained belief, tells us that they have not the true faith. There is no
doubt that they are not in it, since the first miracles of the Church exclude belief in
theirs. Thus there is miracle against miracle, both the first and greatest being on the
side of the Church.
These nuns, astonished at what is said, that they are in the way of perdition; that
their confessors are leading them to Geneva; that they suggest to them that Jesus Christ
is not in the Eucharist, nor on the right hand of the Father; know that all this is false,
and therefore offer themselves to God in this state. Vide si via iniquitatis in me est. 10
What happens thereupon? This place, which is said to be the temple of the devil, God makes
His own temple. It is said that the children must be taken away from it. God heals them
there. It is said that it is the arsenal of hell. God makes of it the sanctuary of His
grace. Lastly, they are threatened with all the fury and vengeance of heaven; and God
overwhelms them with favours. A man would need to have lost his senses to conclude from
this that they are therefore in the way of perdition.
[Footnote 10: Psalms, cxxxix. 24.]
(We have without doubt the same signs as Saint Athanasius.)
842
Si tu es Christus, dic nobis.
Opera quae ego facio in nomine patris mei, haec testimonium perhibent de me. Sed vos
non creditis quia non estis ex ovibus meis. Oves mei vocem meam audiunt. 11
[Footnote 11: Luke, xxii. 67.]
John, vi. 30. Quod ergo tu facis signum ut videamus et credamus tibi? Non dicunt: Quam
doctrinam praedicas?
Nemo potest facere signa quae tu facis nisi Deus.
2 Macc. xiv. 15. Deus qui signis evidentibus suam portionem protegit.
Volumus signum videre de caelo, tentantes eum. Luke, xi. 16.
Generatio prava signum quaerit; et non dabitur. 12
Et ingemiscens ait: Quid generatio ista signum quaerit? (Mark, viii. 12.) They asked a
sign with an evil intention.
Et non poterat facere. 13 And yet he promises them the sign of Jonah, the
great and wonderful miracle of his resurrection.
Nisi videritis signa, non creditis. 14 He does not blame them for not
believing unless there are miracles, but for not believing unless they are themselves
spectators of them.
Antichrist in signis mendacibus, says Saint Paul, 2 Thess. ii.
Secundum operationem Satanae, in seductione iis qui pereunt et quod charitatem
veritatis non receperunt ut salvi fierent, ideo mittet illis Deus operationes erroris ut
credant mendacio. 15
As in the passage of Moses: Tentat enim vos Deus, utrum diligatis eum.
Ecce praedixi vobis: vos ergo videte.
[Footnote 12: Matthew, xii. 39.]
[Footnote 13: Mark, vi. 5.]
[Footnote 14: John, iv. 48.]
[Footnote 15: Thessalonians, ii. 9-11.]
843
Here is not the country of truth. She wanders unknown amongst men. God has covered her
with a veil, which leaves her unrecognised by those who do not hear her voice. Room is
opened for blasphemy, even against the truths that are at least very likely. If the truths
of the Gospel are published the contrary is published too, and the questions are obscured,
so that the people cannot distinguish. And they ask, "What have you to make you
believed rather than others? What sign do you give? You have only words, and so have we.
If you had miracles, good and well." That doctrine ought to be supported by miracles
is a truth, which they misuse in order to revile doctrine. And if miracles happen, it is
said that miracles are not enough without doctrine; and this is another truth, which they
misuse in order to revile miracles.
Jesus Christ cured the man born blind, and performed a number of miracles on the
Sabbath day. In this way He blinded the Pharisees, who said that miracles must be judged
by doctrine.
"We have Moses: but, as for this fellow, we know not from whence he is." It
is wonderful that you know not whence He is, and yet He does such miracles.
Jesus Christ spoke neither against God, nor against Moses.
Antichrist and the false prophets, foretold by both Testaments, will speak openly
against God and against Jesus Christ. Who is not hidden . . . God would not allow him, who
would be a secret enemy, to do miracles openly.
In a public dispute where the two parties profess to be for God, for Jesus Christ, for
the Church, miracles have never been on the side of the false Christians, and the other
side has never been without a miracle.
"He hath a devil." John, x. 21. And others said, "Can a devil open the
eyes of the blind?"
The proofs which Jesus Christ and the apostles draw from Scripture are not conclusive;
for they say only that Moses foretold that a prophet should come. But they do not thereby
prove that this is He; and that is the whole question. These passages therefore serve only
to show that they are not contrary to Scripture, and that there appears no inconsistency,
but not that there is agreement. Now this is enough, namely, exclusion of inconsistency,
along with miracles.
There is a mutual duty between God and men. We must pardon Him this saying: Quid debui?
"Accuse me," said God in Isaiah.
"God must fulfil His promises," &c.
Men owe it to God to accept the religion which He sends. God owes it to men not to lead
them into error. Now, they would be led into error, if the workers of miracles announced a
doctrine which should not appear evidently false to the light of common sense, and if a
greater worker of miracles had not already warned men not to believe them.
Thus, if there were divisions in the Church, and the Arians, for example, who declared
themselves founded on Scripture just as the Catholics, had done miracles, and not the
Catholics, men should have been led into error.
For, as a man, who announces to us the secrets of God, is not worthy to be believed on
his private authority, and that is why the ungodly doubt him; so when a man, as a token of
the communion which he has with God, raises the dead, foretells the future, removes the
seas, heals the sick, there is none so wicked as not to bow to him, and the incredulity of
Pharaoh and the Pharisees is the effect of a supernatural obduracy.
When therefore we see miracles and a doctrine not suspicious, both on one side, there
is no difficulty. But when we see miracles and suspicious doctrine on the same side, we
must then see which is the clearest. Jesus Christ was suspected.
Barjesus blinded. The power of God surpasses that of His enemies.
The Jewish exorcists beaten by the devils, saying, "Jesus I know, and Paul I know;
but who are ye?"
Miracles are for doctrine, and not doctrine for miracles.
If the miracles are true, shall we be able to persuade men of all doctrine? No; for
this will not come to pass. Si angelus . . . 16
[Footnote 16: Galatians, i. 8.]
Rule: we must judge of doctrine by miracles; we must judge of miracles by doctrine. All
this is true, but contains no contradiction.
For we must distinguish the times.
How glad you are to know the general rules, thinking thereby to set up dissension, and
render all useless! We shall prevent you, my father; truth is one and constant.
It is impossible, from the duty of God to men, that a man, hiding his evil teaching,
and only showing the good, saying that he conforms to God and the Church, should do
miracles so as to instil insensibly a false and subtle doctrine. This cannot happen.
And still less, that God, who knows the heart, should perform miracles in favour of
such an one.
844
The three marks of religion: perpetuity, a good life, miracles. They destroy perpetuity
by their doctrine of probability; a good life by their morals; miracles by destroying
either their truth or the conclusions to be drawn from them.
If we believe them, the Church will have nothing to do with perpetuity, holiness, and
miracles. The heretics deny them, or deny the conclusions to be drawn from them; they do
the same. But one would need to have no sincerity in order to deny them, or again to lose
one's senses in order to deny the conclusions to be drawn from them.
Nobody has ever suffered martyrdom for the miracles which she says he has seen; for the
folly of men goes perhaps to the length of martyrdom, for those which the Turks believe by
tradition, but not for those which they have seen.
845
The heretics have always attacked these three marks, which they have not.
846
First objection: "An angel from heaven. We must not judge of truth by miracles,
but of miracles by truth. Therefore the miracles are useless."
Now they are of use, and they must not be in opposition to the truth. Therefore what
Father Lingende has said, that "God will not permit that a miracle may lead into
error . . ."
When there shall be a controversy in the same Church, miracle will decide.
Second objection: "But Antichrist will do miracles."
The magicians of Pharaoh did not entice to error. Thus we cannot say to Jesus
respecting Antichrist, "You have led me into error." For Antichrist will do them
against Jesus Christ, and so they cannot lead into error. Either God will not permit fal e
miracles, or He will procure greater.
[Jesus Christ has existed since the beginning of the world: this is more impressive
than all the miracles of Antichrist.]
If in the same Church there nhould happen a miracle on the side of those in error, men
would be led into error. Schism is visible; a miracle is visible. But schism is more a
sign of error than a miracle is a sign of truth. Therefore a miracle cannot lead into
error.
But apart from schism, error is not so obvious as a miracle is obvious. Therefore a
miracle could lead into error.
Ubi est Deus tuus? 17 Miracles show Him, and are a light.
[Footnote 17: Psalms, xlii. 3.]
847
One of the anthems for Vespers at Christmas: Exortum est in tenebris lumen rectis
corde. 18
[Footnote 18: Psalms, cxii. 4.]
848
If the compassion of God is so great that He instructs us to our benefit, even when He
hides Himself, what light ought we not to expect from Him when He reveals Himself?
849
Will Est et non est 19 be received in faith itself as well as in miracles?
And if it is inseparable in the others. . .
When Saint Xavier works miracles. - [Saint Hilary. Ye wretches, who oblige us to speak
of miracles.]
Unjust judges, make not your own laws on the moment; judge by those which are
established, and by yourselves. Vae qui conditis leges iniquas. 20
[Footnote 19: "Is and is not."]
[Footnote 20: Isaiah, x. 1.]
Miracles endless, false.
In order to weaken your adversaries, you disarm the whole Church.
If they say that our salvation depends upon God, they are "heretics." If they
say that they are obedient to the Pope, that is "hypocrisy." If they are ready
to subscribe to all the articles, that is not enough. If they say that a man must not be
killed for an apple, "they attack the morality of Catholics." If miracles are
done among them, it is not a sign of holiness, and is, on the contrary, a symptom of
heresy.
The way in which the Church has existed is that truth has been without dispute, or, if
it has been contested, there has been the Pope, or, failing him, there has been the
Church.
850
The five propositions condemned, but no miracle; for the truth was not attacked. But
the Sorbonne . . . but the bull . . .
It is impossible that those who love God with all their heart should fail to recognise
the Church; so evident is she. - It is impossible that those who do not love God should be
convinced of the Church.
Miracles have such influence that it was necessary that God should warn men not to
believe in them in opposition to Him, all clear as it is that there is a God. Without this
they would have been able to disturb men.
And thus so far from these passages, Deut. xiii., making against the authority of the
miracles, nothing more indicates their influence. And the same in respect of Antichrist.
"To seduce, if it were possible, even the elect."
851
The history of the man born blind.
What says Saint Paul? Does he continually speak of the evidence of the prophecies? No,
but of his own miracle. What says Jesus Christ? Does He speak of the evidence of the
prophecies? No; His death had not fulfilled them, But He says, Si non fecissem. 21
Believe the works.
[Footnote 21: John, xv. 24.]
Two supernatural foundations of our wholly supernatural religion; one visible, the
other invisible; miracles with grace, miracles without grace.
The synagogue, which has been treated with love as a type of the Church, and with
hatred, because it was only the type, has been restored, being on the point of falling
when it was well with God, and thus a type.
Miracles prove the power which God has over hearts, by that which He exercises over
bodies.
The Church has never approved a miracle among heretics.
Miracles a support of religion: they have been the test of Jews; they have been the
test of Christians, saints, innocents, and true believers.
A miracle among schismatics is not so much to be feared; for schism, which is more
obvious than a miracle, visibly indicates their error. But when there is no shism, and
error is in question, miracle decides.
Si non fecissem quae alius non fecit. 21 The wretches who have obliged us to
speak of miracles.
[Footnote 21: John, xv. 24.]
Abraham and Gideon confirm faith by miracles.
Judith. God speaks at last in their greatest oppression.
If the cooling of love leaves the Church almost without believers, miracles will rouse
them. This is one of the last effects of grace.
If one miracle were wrought among the Jesuits!
When a miracle disappoints the expectation of those in whose presence it happens, and
there is a disproportion between the state of their faith and the instrument of the
miracle, it ought then to induce them to change. But with you it is otherwise. There would
be as much reason in saying that, if the Eucharist raised a dead man, it would be
necessary for one to turn a Calvinist rather than remain a Catholic. But when it crowns
the expectation, and those who hoped that God would bless the remedies, see themselves
healed without remedies . . .
The ungodly. - No sign has ever happened on the part of the devil without a stronger
sign on the part of God, or even without it having been foretold that such would happen.
852
Unjust persecutors of those whom God visibly protects. If they reproach you with your
excesses, "they speak as the heretics." If they say that the grace of Jesus
Christ distinguishes us, "they are heretics." If they do miracles, "it is
the mark of their heresy."
Ezekiel. - They say: These are the people of God who speak thus.
It is said, "Believe in the Church;" but it is not said, "Believe in
miracles;" because the last is natural, and not the first. The one had need of a
precept, not the other. Hezekiah.
The synagogue was only a type, and thus it did not perish; and it was only a type, and
so it is decayed. It was a type which contained the truth, and thus it has lasted until it
no longer contained the truth.
My reverend father, all this happened in types. Other religions perish; this one
perishes not.
[Footnote 21: John, xv. 24.]
Miracles are more important than you think. They have served for the foundation, and
will serve for the continuation of the Church till Antichrist, till the end.
The two witnesses.
In the Old Testament and the New, miracles are performed in connection with types.
Salvation, or an useless thing, if not to show that we must submit to the Scriptures: type
of the sacrament.
853
[We must judge soberly of divine ordinances, my father, Saint Paul in the isle of
Malta.]
854
The hardness of the Jesuits then surpasses that of the Jews, since those refused to
believe Jesus Christ innocent only because they doubted if His miracles were of God.
Whereas the Jesuits, though unable to doubt that the miracles of Port Royal are of God, do
not cease to doubt still the innocence of that house.
855
I suppose that men believe miracles. You corrupt religion either in favour of your
friends, or against your enemies. You arrange it at your will.
856
On the miracle. - As God has made no family more happy, let it also be the case that He
find none more thankful.
Section XIV
Part I
Appendix: Polemical Fragments
857
Clearness, obscurity. - There would be too great darkness if truth had not visible
signs. This is a wonderful one, that it has always been preserved in one Church and one
visible assembly [of men]. There would be too great clearness, if there were only one
opinion in this Church. But in order to recognise what is true, one has only to look at
what has always existed; for it is certain that truth has always existed, and that nothing
false has always existed.
858
The history of the Church ought properly to be called the history of truth.
859
There is a pleasure in being in a ship beaten about by a storm, when we are sure that
it will not founder. The persecutions which harass the Church are of this nature.
860
In addition to so many other signs of piety, they are also persecuted, which is the
best sign of piety.
861
The Church is an excellent state, when it is sustained by God only.
862
The Church has always been attacked by opposite errors, but perhaps never at the same
time, as now. And if she suffer more because of the multiplicity of errors, she derives
this advantage from it, that they destroy each other.
She complains of both, but far more of the Calvinists, because of the schism.
It is certain that many of the two opposite sects are deceived. They must be
disillusioned.
Faith embraces many truths which seem to contradict each other. There is a time to
laugh, and a time to weep, &c. Responde. Ne respondeas, &c. 1
[Footnote 1: Proverbs, xxvi. 4, 5.]
The source of this is the union of the two natures in Jesus Christ; and also the two
worlds (the creation of a new heaven and a new earth; a new life and a new death; all
things double, and the same names remaining); and finally the two natures that are in the
righteous, (for they are the two worlds, and a member and image of Jesus Christ. And thus
all the names suit them: righteous, yet sinners; dead, yet living; living, yet dead;
elect, yet outcast, &c.).
There are then a great number of truths, both of faith and of morality, which seem
contradictory, and which all hold good together in a wonderful system. The source of all
heresies is the exclusion of some of these truths; and the source of all the objections
which the heretics make against us is the ignorance of some of our truths. And it
generally happens that, unable to conceive the connection of two opposite truths, and
believing that the admission of one involves the exclusion of the other, they adhere to
the one, exclude the other, and think of us as opposed to them. Now exclusion is the cause
of their heresy; and ignorance that we hold the other truth causes their objections.
1st example: Jesus Christ is God and man. The Arians, unable to reconcile these things,
which they believe incompatible, say that He is man; in this they are Catholics. But they
deny that He is God; in this they are heretics. They allege that we deny His humanity; in
this they are ignorant.
2nd example: On the subject of the Holy Sacrament. We believe that, the substance of
the bread being changed, and being consubstantial with that of the body of our Lord, Jesus
Christ is therein really present. That is one truth. Another is that this Sacrament is
also a type of the cross and of glory, and a commemoration of the two. That is the
Catholic faith, which comprehends these two truths which seem opposed.
The heresy of to-day, not conceiving that this Sacrament contains at the same time both
the presence of Jesus Christ and a type of Him, and that it is a sacrifice and a
commemoration of a sacrifice, believes that neither of these truths can be admitted
without excluding the other for this reason.
They fasten to this point alone, that this Sacrament is typical; and in this they are
not heretics. They think that we exclude this truth; hence it comes that they raise so
many objections to us out of the passages of the Fathers which assert it. Finally, they
deny the presence; and in this they are heretics.
3rd example: Indulgences.
The shortest way, therefore, to prevent heresies is to instruct in all truths; and the
surest way to refute them is to declare them all. For what will the heretics say?
In order to know whether an opinion is a Father's . . .
863
All err the more dangerously, as they each follow a truth. Their fault is not in
following a falsehood, but in not following another truth.
864
Truth is so obscure in these times, and falsehood so established, that unless we love
the truth, we cannot know it.
865
If there is ever a time in which we must make profession of two opposite truths, it is
when we are reproached for omitting one. Therefore the Jesuits and Jansenists are wrong in
concealing them, but the Jansenists more so, for the Jesuits have better made profession
of the two.
866
Two kinds of people make things equal to one another, as feasts to working days,
Christians to priests, all things among them, &c. And hence the one party conclude
that what is then bad for priests is also so for Christians, and the other that what is
not bad for Christians is lawful for priests.
867
Ifuthe ancient Church was in error, the Church is fallen. If she should be in error
today, it is not the same thing; for she has always the superior maxim of tradition from
the hand of the ancient Church; and so this submission and this conformity to the ancient
Church prevail and correct all. But the ancient Church did not assume the future Church,
and did not consider her, as we assume and consider the ancient.
868
That which hinders us in comparing what formerly occurred in the Church with what we
see there now, is that we generally look upon Saint Athanasius, Saint Theresa, and the
rest, as crowned with glory, and acting towards us as gods. Now that time has cleared up
things, it does so appear. But at the time when he was persecuted, this great saint was a
man called Athanasius; and Saint Theresa was a nun. "Elias was a man subject to like
passions as we are," says Saint James, to disabuse Christians of that false idea
which makes us reject the example of the saints, as disproportioned to our state.
"They were saints," say we, "they are not like us." What then actually
happened? Saint Athanasius was a man called Athanasius, accused of many crimes, condemned
by such and such a council for such and such a crime. All the bishops assented to it, and
finally the Pope. What said they to those who opposed this? That they disturbed the peace,
that they created schism, &c.
Zeal, light. Four kinds of persons: zeal without knowledge; knowledge without zeal;
neither knowledge nor zeal; both zeal and knowledge. The first three condemned him. The
last acquitted him, were excommunicated by the Church, and yet saved the Church.
869
If Saint Augustine came at the present time, and was as little authorised as his
defenders, he would accomplish nothing. God directs his Church well, by having sent him
before with authority.
870
God has not wanted to absolve without the Church. As she has part in the offense, He
desires her to have part in the pardon. He associates her with this power, as kings their
parliaments. But if she absolves or binds without God, she is no longer the Church. For,
as in the case of parliament, even if the king have pardoned a man, it must be ratified;
but if parliament ratifies without the king, or refuses to ratify on the order of the
king, it is no longer the parliament of the king, but a rebellious assembly.
871
The Church, the Pope. Unity, plurality. - Considering the Church as a unity, the Pope,
who is its head, is as the whole. Considering it as a plurality, the Pope is only a part
of it. The Fathers have considered the Church now in the one way, now in the other. And
thus they have spoken differently of the Pope. (Saint Cyprian: Sacerdos Dei.) But in
establishing one of these truths, they have not excluded the other. Plurality which is not
reduced to unity is confusion; unity which does not depend on plurality is tyranny. There
is scarcely any other country than France in which it is permissible to say that the
Council is above the Pope.
872
The Pope is head. Who else is known of all? Who else is recognised by all, having power
to insinuate himself into all the body, because he holds the principal shoot, which
insinuates itself everywhere? How easy it was to make this degenerate into tyranny! That
is why Christ has laid down for them this precept: Vos autem non sic. 2
[Footnote 2: Luke, xxii. 26.]
873
The Pope hates and fears the learned, who do not submit to him at will.
874
We must not judge of what the Pope is by some words of the Fathers - as the Greeks said
in council, important rules - but by the acts of the Church and the Fathers, and by the
canons.
Duo aut tres in unum. 3 Unity and plurality. It is an error to exclude one
of the two, as the papists do who exclude plurality, or the Huguenots who exclude unity.
[Footnote 3: John, x. 30; 1 John, v. 8.]
875
Would the Pope be dishonoured by having his knowledge from God and tradition; and is it
not dishonouring him to separate him from this holy union?
876
God does not perform miracles in the ordinary conduct of His Church. It would be a
strange miracle if infallibility existed in one man. But it appears so natural for it to
reside in a multitude, since the conduct of God is hidden under nature, as in all His
other works.
877
Kings dispose of their own power; but the Popes cannot dispose of theirs.
878
Summum jus, summa injuria. 4
The majority is the best way, because it is visible, and has strength to make itself
obeyed. Yet it is the opinion of the least able.
[Footnote 4: "The greatest law, the greatest injury."]
If men could have done it, they would have placed might in the hands of justice. But as
might does not allow itself to be managed as men want, because it is a palpable quality,
whereas justice is a spiritual quality of which men dispose as they please, they have
placed justice in the hands of might. And thus that is called just which men are forced to
obey.
Hence comes the right of the sword, for the sword gives a true right. Otherwise we
should see violence on one side and justice on the other. End of the twelfth Provincial.
Hence comes the injustice of the Fronde, which raises it alleged justice against power. It
is not the same in the Church, for there is a true justice and no violence.
879
Injustice. - Jurisdiction is not given for the sake of the judge, but for that of the
litigant. It is dangerous to tell this to the people. But the people have too much faith
in you; it will not harm them, and may serve you. It should therefore be made known. Pasce
oveas meas, non tuas. 5 You owe me pasturage.
[Footnote 5: John, xxi. 17.]
880
Men like certainty. They like the Pope to be infallible in faith, and grave doctors to
be infallible in morals, so as to have certainty.
881
The Church teaches, and God inspires, both infallibly. The work of the Church is of use
only as a preparation for grace or condemnation. What it does is enough for condemnation,
not for inspiration.
882
Every time the Jesuits may impose upon the Pope, they will make all Christendom
perjured.
The Pope is very easily imposed upon, because of his occupations, and the confidence
which he has in the Jesuits; and the Jesuits are very capable of imposing upon him by
means of calumny.
883
The wretches who have obliged me to speak of the basis of religion.
884
Sinners purified without penitence; the righteous justified without love; all
Christians without the grace of Jesus Christ; God without power over the will of men; a
predestination without mystery; a redemption without certitude!
885
Any one is made a priest, who wants to be so, as under Jeroboam.
It is a horrible thing that they propound to us the discipline of the Church of to-day
as so good, that it is made a crime to desire to change it. Formerly it was infallibly
good, and it was thought that it could be changed without sin; and now, such as it is, we
cannot wish it changed! It has indeed been permitted to change the custom of not making
priests without such great circumspection, that there were hardly any who worthy; and it
is not allowed to complain of the custom which makes so many who are unworthy!
886
Heretics. - Ezekiel. All the heathen, and also the Prophet, spoke evil of Israel. But
the Israelites were so far from having the right to say to him, "You speak like the
heathen," that he is most forcible upon this, that the heathens say the same as he.
887
The Jansenists are like the heretics in the reformation of morality; but you are like
them in evil.
888
You are ignorant of the prophecies, if you do not know that all this must happen;
princes, prophets, Pope, and even the priests. And yet the Church is to abide. By the
grace of God we have not come to that. Woe to these priests! But we hope that God will
bestow His mercy upon us that we shall not be of them.
Saint Peter, ii.: false prophets in the past, the image of future ones.
889
. . . So that if it is true, on the one hand, that some lax monks, and some corrupt
casuists, who are not members of the hierarchy, are steeped in these corruptions, it is,
on the other hand, certain that the true pastors of the Church, who are the true guardians
of the Divine Word, have preserved it unchangeably against the efforts of those who have
attempted to destroy it.
And thus true believers have no pretext to follow that laxity, which is only offered to
them by the strange hands of these casuists, instead of the sound doctrine which is
presented to them by the fatherly hands of their own pastors. And the ungodly and heretics
have no ground for publishing these abuses as evidence of imperfection in the providence
of God over His Church; since, the Church consisting properly in the body of the
hierarchy, we are so far from being able to conclude from the present state of matters
that God has abandoned her to corruption, that it has never been more apparent than at the
present time that God visibly protects her from corruption.
For if some of these men, who, by an extraordinary vocation, have made profession of
withdrawing from the world and adopting the monks' dress, in order to live in a more
perfect state than ordinary Christians, have fallen into excesses which horrify ordinary
Christians, and have become to us what the false prophets were among the Jews; this is a
private and personal misfortune, which must indeed be deplored, but from which nothing can
be inferred against the care which God takes of His Church; since all these things are so
clearly foretold, and it has been so long since announced that these temptations would
arise from this kind of people; so that when we are well instructed, we see in this rather
evidence of the care of God than of His forgetfulness in regard to us.
Book: Section XIV
Part II
890
Tertullian: Nunquam Ecclesia reformabitur. 6
[Footnote 6: "The Church will never be reformed."]
891
Heretics, who take advantage of the doctrine of the Jesuits, must be made to know that
it is not that of the Church . . . the doctrine of the Church; and that our divisions do
not separate us from the altar.
892
If in differing we condemned, you would be right. Uniformity without diversity is
useless to others; diversity without uniformity is ruinous for us. The one is harmful
outwardly; the other inwardly.
893
By showing the truth, we cause it to be believed; but by showing the injustice of
ministers, we do not correct it. Our mind is assured by a proof of falsehood; our purse is
not made secure by proof of injustice.
894
Those who love the Church lament to see the corruption of morals; but laws at least
exist. But these corrupt the laws. The model is damaged.
895
Men never do evil so completely and cheerfully as when they do it from religious
conviction.
896
It is in vain that the Church has established these words, anathemas, heresies, &c.
They are used against her.
897
The servant knoweth not what his lord doeth, for the master tells him only the act and
not the intention. And this is why he often obeys slavishly, and defeats the intention.
But Jesus Christ has told us the object. And you defeat that object.
898
They cannot have perpetuity, and they seek universality, and therefore they make the
whole Church corrupt, that they may be saints.
899
Against those who misuse passages of Scripture, and who pride themselves in finding one
which seems to favour their error. - The chapter for Vespers, Passion Sunday, the prayer
for the king.
Explanation of these words: "He that is not with me is against me." And of
these others: "He that is not against you is for you." A person who says:
"I am neither for nor against;" we ought to reply to him . . .
900
He who will give the meaning of Scripture, and does not take it from Scripture, is an
enemy of Scripture. (Augustine: De doctrina christiana.)
901
Humilibus dat gratiam; an ideo non dedit humilitatem? 7
Sui eum non receperunt; quotquot autem non receperunt an non erant sui? 8
[Footnote 7: James, iv. 6.]
[Footnote 8: John, i. 11, 12.]
902
"It must indeed be," says Feuillant, "that this is not so certain; for
controversy indicates uncertainty, (Saint Athanasius, Saint Chrysostom, morals
unbelievers)."
The Jesuits have not made the truth uncertain, but they have made their own ungodliness
certain.
Contradiction has always been permitted, in order to blind the wicked; for all that
offends truth or love is evil. This is the true principle.
903
All religions and sects in the world have had natural reason for a guide. Christians
alone have been constrained to take their rules from without themselves, and to acquaint
themselves with those which Jesus Christ bequeathed to men of old to be handed down to
true believers. This constraint wearies these good Fathers. They desire, like other
people, to have liberty to follow their own imaginations. It is in vain that we cry to
them, as the prophets said to the Jews of old: "Enter into the Church; acquaint
yourselves with the precepts which the men of old left to her, and follow those
paths." They have answered like the Jews: "We will not walk in them; but we will
follow the thoughts of our hearts;" and they have said, "We will be as the other
nations."
904
They make a rule of exception.
Have the men of old given absolution before penance? Do this as exceptional. But of the
exception you make a rule without exception, so that you do not even want the rule to be
exceptional.
905
On confessions and absolutions without signs of regret.
God regards only the inward; the Church judges only by the outward. God absolves as
soon as He sees penitence in the heart; the Church when she sees it in works. God will
make a Church pure within, which confounds, by its inward and entirely spiritual holiness,
the inward impiety of proud sages and Pharisees; and the Church will make an assembly of
men whose external manners are so pure as to confound the manners of the heathen. If there
are hypocrites among them, but so well disguised that she does not discover their venom,
she tolerates them; for, though they are not accepted of God, whom they cannot deceive,
they are of men, whom they do deceive. And thus she is not dishonoured by their conduct,
which appears holy. But you want the Church to judge neither of the inward, because that
belongs to God alone, nor of the outward, because God dwells only upon the inward; and
thus, taking away from her all choice of men, you retain in the Church the most dissolute,
and those who dishonour her so greatly, that the synagogues of the Jews and sects of
philosophers would have banished them as unworthy; and have abhorred them as impious.
906
The easiest conditions to live in according to the world are the most difficult to live
in according to God, and vice versa. Nothing is so difficult according to the world as the
religious life; nothing is easier than to live it according to God. Nothing is easier,
according to the world, than to live in high office and great wealth; nothing is more
difficult than to live in them according to God, and without acquiring an interest in them
and a liking for them.
907
The casuists submit the decision to the corrupt reason, and the choice of decisions to
the corrupt will, in order that all that is corrupt in the nature of man may contribute to
his conduct.
908
But is it probable that probability gives assurance?
Difference between rest and security of conscience. Nothing gives certainly but truth;
nothing gives rest but the sincere search for truth.
909
The whole society itself of their casuists cannot give assurance to a conscience in
error, and that is why it is important to choose good guides.
Thus they will be doubly culpable, both in having followed ways which they should not
have followed, and in having listened to teachers to whom they should not have listened.
910
Can it be anything but compliance with the world which makes you find things probable?
Will you make us believe that it is truth, and that if duelling were not the fashion, you
would find it probable that they might fight, considering the matter in itself?
911
Must we kill to prevent there being any wicked? This is to make both parties wicked
instead of one. Vince in bono malum. 9 (Saint Augustine.)
[Footnote 9: Romans, xii. 21.]
912
Universal. - Ethics and language are special, but universal sciences.
913
Probability. - Each one can employ it; no one can take it away.
914
They allow lust to act, and check scruples; whereas they should do the contrary.
915
Montalte. - Lax opinions please men so much, that it is strange that theirs displease.
It is because they have exceeded all bounds. Again, there are many people who see the
truth, and who cannot attain to it; but there are few who do not know that the purity of
religion is opposed to our corruptions. It is absurd to say that an eternal recompense is
offered to the morality of Escobar.
916
Probability. - They have some true principles; but they misuse them. Now, the abuse of
truth ought to be as much punished as the introduction of falsehood.
As if there were two hells, one for sins against love, the other for those against
justice!
917
Probability. - The earnestness of the saints in seeking the truth was useless, if the
probable is trustworthy. The fear of the saints who have always followed the surest way,
(Saint Theresa having always followed her confessor).
918
Take away probability, and you can no longer please the world; give probability, and
you can no longer displease it.
919
These are the effects of the sins of the peoples and of the Jesuits. The great have
wished to be flattered. The Jesuits have wished to be loved by the great. They have all
been worthy to be abandoned to the spirit of lying, the one party to deceive, the others
to be deceived. They have been avaricious, ambitious, voluptuous. Coacervabunt tibi
magistres. 10 Worthy disciples of such masters, they have sought flatterers,
and have found them.
[Footnote 10: 2 Timothy, iv. 3.]
920
If they do not renounce their doctrine of probability, their good maxims are as little
holy as the bad, for they are founded on human authority; and thus, if they are more just,
they will be more reasonable, but not more holy. They take after the wild stem on which
they are grafted.
If what I say does not serve to enlighten you, it will be of use to the people.
If these are silent, the stones will speak.
Silence is the greatest persecution; the saints were never silent. It is true that a
call is necessary; but it is not from the decrees of the Council that we must learn
whether we are called, it is from the necessity of speaking. Now, after Rome has spoken,
and we think that she has condemned the truth, and that they have written it, and after
the books which have said the contrary are censured; we must cry out so much the louder,
the more unjustly we are censured, and the more violently they would stifle speech, until
there come a Pope who hears both parties, and who consults antiquity to do justice. So the
good Popes will find the Church still in outcry.
The Inquisition and the Society are the two scourges of the truth.
Why do you not accuse them of Arianism? For, though they have said that Jesus Christ is
God, perhaps they mean by it not the natural interpretation, but as it is said, Dii estis.
11
If my Letters are condemned at Rome, that which I condemn in them is condemned in
heaven. Ad tuum, Domine Jesu, tribunal appello. 12
[Footnote 11: "Ye are Gods."]
[Footnote 12: "To thy judgment-seat, Lord Jesus, I appeal."]
You yourselves are corruptible.
I feared that I had written ill, seeing myself condemned; but the example of so many
pious writings makes me believe the contrary. It is no longer allowable to write well, so
corrupt or ignorant is the Inquisition!
"It is better to obey God than men."
I fear nothing; I hope for nothing. It is not so with the bishops. Port Royal fears,
and it is bad policy to disperse them; for they will fear no longer and will cause greater
fear. I do not even fear your like censures, if they are not founded on those of
tradition. Do you censure all? What! even my respect? No. Say then what, or you will do
nothing, if you do not point out the evil, and why it is evil. And this is what they will
have great difficulty in doing.
Probability. - They have given a ridiculous explanation of certitude; for, after having
established that all their ways are sure, they have no longer called that sure which leads
to heaven without danger of not arriving there by it, but that which leads there without
danger of going out of that road.
921
. . . The saints indulge in subtleties in order to think themselves criminals, and
impeach their better actions. And these indulge in subtleties in order to excuse the most
wicked.
The heathen sages erected a structure equally fine outside, but upon a bad foundation;
and the devil deceives men by this apparent resemblance based upon the most different
foundation.
Man never had so good a cause as I; and others have never furnished so good a capture
as you . . .
The more they point out weakne s in my person, the more they authorise my cause.
You say that I am a heretic. Is that lawful? And if you do not fear that men do
justice, do you not fear that God does justice?
You will feel the force of the truth, and you will yield to it . . .
There is something supernatural in such a blindness. Digna necessitas. 13
Mentiris impudentissime 14 . . .
Doctrina sua noscitur vir 15 . . .
False piety, a double sin.
[Footnote 13: "Their desert by necessity was drawing nigh." - Wisdom, xix.
4.]
[Footnote 14: "You lie most impudently."]
[Footnote 15: "A man is known by his doctrine."]
I am alone against thirty thousand. No. Protect, you, the court; protect, you,
deception; let me protect the truth. It is all my strength. If I lose it, I am undone. I
shall not lack accusations, and persecutions. But I possess the truth, and we shall see
who will take it away.
I do not need to defend religion, but you do not need to defend error and injustice.
Let God, out of His compassion, having no regard to the evil which is in me, and having
regard to the good which is in you, grant us all grace that truth may not be overcome in
my hands, and that falsehood . . .
922
Probable. - Let us see if we seek God sincerely, by comparison of the things which we
love. It is probable that this food will not poison me. It is probable that I shall not
lose my action by not prosecuting it . . .
923
It is not absolution only which remits sins by the sacrament of penance, but
contrition, which is not real if it does not seek the sacrament.
924
People who do not keep their word, without faith, without honour, without truth,
deceitful in heart, deceitful in speech; for which that amphibious animal in fable was
once reproached, which held itself in a doubtful position between the fish and the birds .
. .
It is important to kings and princes to be considered pious; and therefore they must
confess themselves to you.